The Dalrymples

By Agnes Giberne

The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Dalrymples, by Agnes Giberne

This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
using this eBook.

Title: The Dalrymples

Author: Agnes Giberne

Release Date: May 12, 2023 [eBook #70740]

Language: English

*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DALRYMPLES ***

Transcriber's note: Unusual and inconsistent spelling is as printed.

[Illustration: "I shouldn't wonder, but I ought to know you, sir,"
he said.]


                    THE DALRYMPLES

                          BY
                     AGNES GIBERNE

                       AUTHOR OF
  "BERYL AND PEARL," "MISS CON," "ST. AUSTIN'S LODGE," ETC.



 "I find the great thing in this world is not so much where we stand,
as in what direction we are moving." — O. W. HOLMES.



                        LONDON
              JAMES NISBET & CO., LIMITED
                   BERNERS STREET



         Printed by BALLANTYNE, HANSON & CO.
         At the Ballantyne Press, Edinburgh



CONTENTS.

CHAP.

I. HARVEY

II. MARJORY'S INDIGNATION

III. A "SISTER" FOR HERMIONE

IV. AFTER EIGHT YEARS

V. RIGHT AND WRONG

VI. IVY-LEAVES

VII. JUNE SUNSHINE

VIII. FOR THE FUTURE

IX. JULIA HERSELF

X. SUDDEN PERIL

XI. WONDERFUL COMPOSURE

XII. TWENTY THOUSAND POUNDS

XIII. DEGREES OF GOODNESS

XIV. EXPECTED

XV. THINGS DIFFERENT

XVI. AN INTERVIEW

XVII. ON BOTH SIDES

XVIII. A CHILD CONFIDANTE

XIX. THE REAL QUESTION

XX. TAKEN BY SURPRISE

XXI. "STIFF-NECKED"

XXII. THE QUESTION OF GOING

XXIII. MRS. OGILVIE

XXIV. PRINCE AND EMPEROR

XXV. A TRYING POSITION

XXVI. SENT FOR

XXVII. A PRIVATE ARRANGEMENT

XXVIII. JULIA'S COGITATIONS

XXIX. WHAT TO THINK OF IT

XXX. FROM MISS DALTON

XXXI. SEEN LAST

XXXII. BELEAGUERED

XXXIII. NOT MARJORY!

XXXIV. GIVING IN

XXXV. "DOING JUSTLY"



THE DALRYMPLES.

CHAPTER I.

HARVEY.

"MISS HERMINY'S a angel! That's what she be!" The old gardener at the
Rectory, who was uncle to the head-gardener at the Hall, and who
prided himself not a little on that social distinction, brought down
his spade with an expressive bump. Then he rested his two aged and
muscular hands upon the spade handle and peered upward into the face
of the person addressed, before proceeding to deliver himself more
fully of his sentiments.

"Miss Herminy's a angel! That's what I says! And I don't care
who unsays it! She's got the wings a-wanting, and nought else.
If 'twasn't for that, sir, she'd just soar right away, she would,
to her native element, nor wouldn't stay no longer on this here
sordid earth of ours. To look upon her now minds me of that what
King David said, 'Oh that I had wings like a dove'—sir—not but what
they be fitter words for an old fellow like me than a young thing
like her. But sometimes I'm afeared it's that she will do
one o' these days, when she comes along o' the path in her white
frock, looking for all the world like a white-robed angel in them
hymns we sings in Church, sir, and palms in their hands, and she
so lightsome of spirit still, and her hair like gold, and a look
of heaven in her blue eyes that's always smiling, and never a bit
of pride nor a thought for her own self. Yes, sir, Miss Herminy's
a angel, and no mistake!"

"Haven't the least doubt of it," responded the other, with a curious
intonation. He might have been thirty or more in age, though
young-looking for that. He was of good stature, good figure,
good features, with a mouth lazily good-humoured and eyes lazily
kind. As old Sutton rambled on, the younger man stood close outside
the Rectory gate, one of those swing-gates which have five or six
horizontal bars of wood, and another sloping diagonally from an upper
to a lower opposite corner. He lounged against this gate with an air
of gentlemanly indolence, partly holding it open, partly using it
to support his weight.

"And if my word ain't enough, sir, why, there be the squire, and my
master Mr. Fitzalan, and Miss Marjory, as is like own sister to Miss
Herminy. Not for to speak of Mr. Harry, sir. And the Hall servants,
sir, if I might make bold to mention 'em—and the village folk."

"Mr. Dalrymple, her grandfather!"

"Ay, sir, and a fine old gentleman he do be. I don't know a finer
nowheres. And a good and God-fearing man as ever you see, who'll
stand up for the poor man, and who'll set right over might, let what
will happen. And he be that set upon Miss Herminy, sir! He've got
nought but she in the world, and she've got nought but he; and they
just do hang together, like—them two. And whatever's to become of
Miss Herminy when he's a-taken away, for he's an old man, and it
mayn't be long before the call 'll come; and if I'm not mistaking,
it 'll be no sorrowful call to him, sir; no, for he's a man as do
love and fear God with all his heart, and delights to worship in His
temple. But whatever's to become of Miss Herminy when that time comes
I don't know—that I don't."

"Estate entailed, I believe, on the male line," was the only remark
made in answer.

"Ay, sir; so I've heard. And a wicked thing it he, giving away
the place from she as has the right, to one away in furrin parts for
years and years, never taking no heed to his heritage. He don't value
it, sir, no more than Esau did as sold his for a mess of pottage.
And Miss Herminy to have nought; and she the apple of the old man's
eye. No, sir, it's a wicked thing—I don't know a wickeder."

The gentleman lifted his eyebrows. "The heir is a near relative,
of course," he said.

"His father and Miss Herminy's mother they was first cousins, sir.
And he as good as a brother to Miss Herminy in years past, till he
took to wandering like a vagabond over the face of the earth. There's
many a one thought summat 'ud surely come of that, sir; and it was
Mr. Dalrymple's wish too, and no mistake. But it ain't come yet.
Though there be no knowing—if so be he was to see Miss Herminy now.
For if ever there was a angel on earth, it's Miss Herminy."

"She was a pretty child when I saw her last, Sutton."

Something familiar in tone and manner caught the old gardener's
attention. He stared, and scratched aside two or three grey hairs
which had wandered over his wrinkled forehead.

"I shouldn't wonder but I'd ought to know you, sir," he said, "if you
was ever at the Hall before. I'm getting old now, and my eyesight
ain't none of the best, nor my memory nayther. I shouldn't wonder
if I'd ought to know you." He peered hard still, blinking a little.
"And I'm thinking now as I sees summat. It ain't—surely—Miss
Herminy's cousin—young Mr. Dalrymple!"

"I am Harvey Dalrymple," was the reply. "Yes—Miss Hermione's second
cousin—or, if you like it, her brother."

"Young Mr. Dalrymple—his very own self!" ejaculated Sutton. "Well,
well, sir—I'm glad to see you anyways. And maybe it's One above has
brought you home for His own purposes, sir—if so be you'll pardon
an old man saying it."

Dalrymple did not look offended; it was not his way to take offence
easily.

"I hope I am come for no bad purpose, at all events," he rejoined
lightly. "After eight years' absence, it is not so very astonishing
that I should turn up again for a couple of nights. You can tell
Mr. Fitzalan of my sudden appearance, and say that I would have
called if anybody had been indoors. By-the-bye, I have not asked yet
after Miss Fitzalan."

"Miss Marjory be as usual, sir. She don't never complain."

"And Mr. Harry?"

Sutton's face lighted up proudly.

"Mr. Harry do be growed a fine young gentleman, sir—as fine a young
gentleman as ever I see. And they do say he be mighty thought of
at the 'Varsity, he be that clever. And as fine a young gentleman!
To see him a horseback now!"

The sight of Harry Fitzalan on horseback plainly went beyond
old Sutton's descriptive powers. He nodded his head, and was mute.

"Good day. We shall meet again," Dalrymple said, with a friendly nod.

Sutton remained motionless, staring blankly after the retreating
figure.

"Young Mr. Dalrymple, his very own self. And I to be talking of he
to he, and never a thought in my head as he'd come back. And all them
years in furrin parts. Well, well, he ain't too early nor he ain't
too late neither. For the old squire he be living, and Miss Herminy
she ain't married. And I shouldn't wonder—no, I shouldn't." Sutton
shook his scant grey locks, leaving the sentence incomplete.

Meanwhile Dalrymple, following the dusty highroad by which he had
already come through the village and passed the Rectory, rounded
another curve and found himself close to the Church of whitish stone,
matching the whitish Rectory. A square tower was dressed in a garment
of aged ivy, and the windows of tinted glass had ivy fringes around
them.

Dalrymple knew from personal recollection how those green leaf
fringes could be seen from within, showing through the dull-tinted
diamond panes. He had been used to worship in this Church, week
by week, through early boyhood, standing, sitting, kneeling, by his
mother's side. He had been there also in later years, but the
childish remembrances were the strongest.

Almost a quarter of a century had gone by since that mother's death,
yet he could recall her still, vividly as if he had seen her but one
month before. The graceful girlish figure came back to him now, as he
lingered, and the sweet fair face, and the heavenly calm of the soft
eyes. He seemed to see himself again as a small boy in the big
"squire's pew," gazing up into those rapt eyes with a child's
half-adoring love, as her clear voice rang out in words of praise,
mingling with the less tuneful notes of the village choir.

"If ever an angel lived in human form, she was one," he murmured.

Then he roused himself to go on, but paused anew, for a girl was
coming along the road straight towards him. He knew in a moment
who it was.

She wore a dress of summer serge, dark-grey in colour, fitting
closely, and made in a style of absolute plainness. There were no
plaitings, puffings, or braidings about any part of it, while the
collar and cuffs were of thick white linen. Rather below middle
height, she had a face uniformly pale, and habitual shadows under the
eyes. The features generally were irregular, boasting no beauty,
but the outline of the cheek seen from behind was pretty; abundant
brown hair sheltered the broad forehead, falling partly over it
in loose waves; and the grey eyes, with their depths of feeling,
gave character to a face which otherwise was not remarkable. A straw
hat hung over one arm, and she carried a mass of small white roses
in an open basket.

Dalrymple went forward a few steps, and held out his hand.

"Marjory herself!" he said.

There was one swift glance of scrutiny.

"Mr. Dalrymple—is it?—" in a surprised tone; and she gave him
her hand somewhat constrainedly.

"It used to be 'Harvey,'" he remarked, smiling. "Am I so altered?"

"I don't know. Things are altered. And I was a child then."

"True. Would you have known me if I had not spoken?"

Marjory lifted her eyes for another rapid examination, The eyelids
had a trick of dropping—as if with their own weight—so soon as the
eyes had seen enough for the business in hand.

"Yes—perhaps—I don't know. I did not expect—Hermione had not told
me—"

"Hermione does not know yet that I am on English ground."

Marjory responded only by a vague "Oh!" Her face showed disapproval.

"It was a sudden resolution. I am not much given to letter-writing,
as you know."

She said "Yes," and then "No," in answer, vaguely still. A slight
movement brought her close to the churchyard gate.

"You are tired," he said, as she leant against it, "Come inside and
sit down."

"O no! I must go home. It is only the heat."

"Not stronger than you used to be, I am afraid."

"I don't know. One learns not to give in so easily."

Harvey Dalrymple made no immediate answer. He was gazing up at the
tower, and his next remark was an involuntary— "How it recalls
old days!"

"When you were here last?"

"No; farther back. When my mother was living."

"Before I was born."

Though her face might have belonged to any age under thirty,
Marjory was only twenty-one.

"Yes; before you were born, and before your father had the
living. . . . I have just been recalling childish fancies of mine
in those days connected with the big square pew. By-the-bye, that pew
is soon to be a thing of the past, isn't it? Hermione writes
of projected improvements. There was a certain window just in front,
which, imagination, to my infant imagination, was the gate of heaven.
Yes, that corner window—ivy all round, just as it used to be."
He spoke half lightly, half seriously, adding, in a moved tone, "When
my mother was taken, I fully believed that she had gone upward
that way, through a path of sunbeams and green leaves."

"Children sometimes see farther than grown people," Marjory asserted
gravely.

"At all events, they fancy more."

"They see farther sometimes."

He seemed a little amused again, and remarked, "You used to hold your
opinions very strongly, I remember."

Marjory looked up, and asked, "Do you think living much in the world
sharpens one's spiritual sight? I don't."

"Ah, this is old days over again! You and I were always dropping into
arguments. Must you have a categorical answer? Well, perhaps not."

"I suppose—" Marjory said, and paused.

"Yes?—" questioningly.

"I was only thinking of those lines—of course you know them—"

"'But now 'tis little joy
To know I'm farther off from heaven
Than when I was a boy!'"

"Isn't that a rather serious deduction from the loss of a childish
fancy about green leaves and sunshine?"

"I am not making any deductions. I do not know you well enough—
yourself. We were speaking of children generally, I thought."

Perhaps Harvey had had enough, and did not care to pursue the
subject. His next words were, "I have had to walk from the station,
of course, through sending no previous notice. Curious to see
old Sutton in your garden still!"

"Sutton is a fixture."

"Everything is a fixture at Westford. Even you are hardly changed—
only, I suppose, older."

He had known her well, eight years earlier, with a brother-and-sister
intimacy. It had not occurred to him, till now, that the young man's
recollections of the child of thirteen might be more distinct than
the child's recollections of the young man of twenty-four. In truth
it was not so, for Marjory's mental pictures of Harvey were most
vivid. Still, during his long absence she had passed from childhood
to womanhood, while he had only gone on from an earlier to a more
advanced stage of young manhood; and it was by no means so easy for
her as for him to drop at once into the old grooves of intercourse.

"Yes, much older. I do not feel myself the same."

"And Hermione?"

"Hermione? Oh!" Marjory's whole face lighted up. "You will find
Hermione everything that you could wish. She is—no, I can't describe
her. There never was any one like Hermione."

"Angelic, in short. You and Sutton seem to be of the same opinion."

"Yes; and you will not wonder when you see her. So lovely, so unlike
other girls. There are not two opinions about Hermione. At least—no,
not really two; only, of course, people see differently. But I cannot
tell you how she is beloved in the village—almost worshipped.
The surliest man there can't say a rough word to Hermione. We all
look up to her. Yes, she is younger than I am; but what of that?
One looks up to another because of what she is, not because of any
particular age."

"Well, perhaps—no. And Hermione is pretty?"

"She is—no, I will not describe her. You must see for yourself."

"She could be an arrant little fury, I remember, if anybody crossed
her will. You were the victim occasionally."

"Was I? I have forgotten. Nothing of the kind ever happens now."

"Why, no. At nineteen one doesn't expect tornadoes of wrath."

"But there is no temper—no readiness to be vexed. She is sweetness
itself. Nothing ever puts her out. If she had a temper as a child,
that is all over. You had better not set me off about her, because I
shall not know when to stop. I think—I almost think I could die
for Hermione."

Marjory spoke the last words under her breath, and the downcast eyes
glowed with a fervour of devotion. Harvey was touched, yet
entertained. His easy and pliant nature, though not without its
reservoirs of strong feeling, was hardly capable of understanding
Marjory. Before he had decided what to say, she added, "But I ought
to go home, and I must not keep you from them longer."

Harvey lifted his hat, and shook hands. In the act of turning away
he stopped short, faced her once more, his sunburnt cheek slightly
flushing, and said, "My old friends will have to congratulate me."

Marjory's voice and eyes alike asked, "What for?"

"On my recent marriage."

The eyes opened more widely. Harvey had not the smallest doubt that,
in her mind, as in old Sutton's, he had been the destined husband
of Hermione Rivers.

"Well?" he said, smiling, though not so much at his ease as usual.

"I never know how to congratulate," Marjory replied abruptly.
"We don't learn that sort of thing in this rustic place—as a matter
of form, I mean."

She turned off with so decisive an air that he had no choice about
pursuing his solitary way.



CHAPTER II.

MARJORY'S INDIGNATION.

"Shameful!" Marjory said to herself with warmth after quitting
Harvey. "Without a word to Mr. Dalrymple or to Hermione!—and Mr.
Dalrymple always so good to him. He might at least have written,
even if he would not come home first. Such a cruel slight
to Mr. Dalrymple! I shall never, never like Harvey again."

Three minutes brought Marjory to the Rectory. She paused a moment
in the garden to ask of Sutton, "Has my father come in yet?"

"No, Miss Marjory, he ain't."

"Sutton, I wish you would take this basket of roses round
to Mrs. Pennant's. I promised to leave them for Miss Rivers, and I
don't feel now as if I could walk any farther."

Sutton rubbed his head dubiously.

"Well, now. Miss Marjory, I've got all this lot of diggin' to do: and
however it'll be done, if I'm a-gadding about at all hours for 'ee—"

"Never mind. I'll take the flowers myself," said the girl curtly.

She went straight indoors, blaming herself for the tone before she
crossed the threshold. Nobody was in the drawing-room. Books and work
lay about carelessly, not untidily. Marjory placed the basket on a
table, pulled off her hat, and threw herself down flat on a low
couch, having not even a pillow under her head. Though by no means
an invalid in habits, she suffered much, and had suffered for years,
from spinal weakness. The amount of work Marjory got through in her
home and in the Parish was astounding; but frequent short rests were
a necessity. "If I can just stop now and then to breathe, I do well
enough," she used to say patiently.

Ten minutes of entire stillness were followed by a light tread.
Marjory did not stir, except to lift her eyelids. A gentleman
entered, unmistakably her father. He was under medium height for a
man, and so thin as to be bony, with long fingers and pale skin.
His colouring was, however, more healthy than hers, and while it was
easily seen whence she had inherited her expressive eyes, the loose
hair was in him more scanty and was fast turning grey.

"Marjory resting!" he said in cheery tones, not as if surprised
or anxious.

"Yes, father!"

"What have you been doing?"

"I went to several cottages, and then to see Hermione. And on my way
back I met—"

"One moment. I must look at these letters the first thing."

Marjory seemed to have no objection to the delay. She shut her eyes
again and lay as before, flat and motionless, her arms straight down
by her sides. No other position so well suited the tired back;
but sometimes nothing less than the floor would do; and even then
Marjory had often an odd craving to get lower still as a relief
to her weariness. She never spoke of such sensations, however.

Presently a slight movement aroused her, and she found Mr. Fitzalan
to have taken a seat near.

"You have something to say," he observed.

"Harvey has come home."

"Yes!" It was a curious long syllable.

"Did you know? Have you seen him?"

"No. Sutton told me, as he doubtless told you."

"Sutton said nothing. I met Harvey. Ought I to call him
'Mr. Dalrymple'? I did at first, and he told me not. He was on his
way to the Hall. I am not sure that I should have known him, if he
had not stopped me; and yet he is very like his own self—the same
face and manner. But—father, he is married!"

Mr. Fitzalan gave one rapid glance up, after his daughter's
own fashion. He had been leaning a little forward, looking down.

"Married! Where and when?"

"I don't know. I heard nothing more. It made me angry, and I hurried
away. Of course he is old enough to decide for himself, and he is
quite independent, but still—still—Mr. Dalrymple has always been
so good to him—surely he ought to have heard beforehand! That,
at least, even if he might not say 'Yes' or 'No.' It seems cruel
to have done it in this way. And when one knows what Mr. Dalrymple's
great wish has been for so long—"

"Mr. Dalrymple's wish might have had a better hope of fulfilment,
if he had never spoken of it to Harvey."

"Yes, perhaps; but at least he need not have kept out of the way all
these years. Of course, a man must be free to choose for himself; and
Hermione might never have cared for him, even if he had wished
to marry her. I don't think she would be easily won. It is not that,
but his way of treating Mr. Dalrymple that I mind—putting him
to pain."

"Why, my dear Marjie!" for Marjory's eyes were full.

"I can't help it, father. I am cross, I know; but I can't bear
to think how Mr. Dalrymple will feel, when he has so longed for the
Hall to be always Hermione's home."

Mr. Fitzalan looked up again. "The old story; always trying to choose
for those we love! How can Mr. Dalrymple tell what will be
for Hermione's happiness?"

"No; only he does wish, and it is so natural to wish. And what I mind
is the disappointment coming so very suddenly—no time beforehand
for getting used to it. Harvey used to be so different. He never
would have done such a thing—once! It does seem to me so wrong and
unkind not to have spoken or written first. And when one has looked
up to a person for years—" Marjory's voice failed.

"Or to an idealised memory of a person," Mr. Fitzalan said quietly.
Few men in his place could have entered fully into Marjory's meaning;
but he knew her well, and recognised at once the dethroning of a
hero. His voice held the right mixture of the sympathetic and the
bracing as he continued, "This is not the first time that Harvey has
disappointed his friends."

"Oh, I know—people have blamed him for staying so long abroad, if he
were not obliged. But Hermione and I have always believed that he had
some really good reason. We never can forget what he used to be
with us, always so kind and gentle. And that is not usual, father.
Young men just leaving college don't generally care much for children
of eleven and thirteen."

"Perhaps not, generally. Harvey would do anything for anybody, if it
were not too much trouble."

Marjory made no answer, and her pale brow was knitted sorrowfully.
Mr. Fitzalan moved away to the table, where he began writing letters,
and presently Marjory followed him.

"Up again! Not rested yet, I think," he said, hardly pausing in his
rapid penmanship.

"I don't know. I must go out."

"What for?"

"Hermione asked me to leave these roses, with her love, at Mrs.
Pennant's."

"I saw Pennant just now on his rounds. Why could not Hermione leave
the flowers herself, or send a servant?"

"I don't know. She asked me."

"And you never say 'No' to Hermione?"

Marjory's lips parted in a smile. "I suppose not. I did not know
I should feel the heat so much. Besides, it is only down the village.
I will take the basket at once, and rest afterwards."

"No—I will see to the flowers."

"But your letters?"

"They shall wait. Duties never clash, my dear."

Mr. Fitzalan's left hand went detainingly to the basket-handle, while
his right, which had dropped the pen, drew her down upon a chair
close to his side. She laid her head against his shoulder, and there
was the sound of a long breath, half of pain, half of content. As a
rule these two were more reserved in their daily intercourse one with
the other than might have been expected. They loved deeply, and they
"pulled together well," as the saying is: yet their "hermit-spirits"
lived apart in locked chambers, seldom touching. Once in a way this
seclusion was broken through, but not often. Perhaps they were too
busy in outward life; perhaps too much alike in character.

"Poor little woman!" Mr. Fitzalan said musingly. "Always knocking
against hard corners in this rocky world of ours! But there's balm
for bruises, Marjie."

"Am I bruised?" and she tried to laugh; then whispered, "I hate to be
stupid."

"It is not stupidity. You are overstrained, doing everybody's work
for everybody. The fall of a wax image from its pedestal seems
a woeful event at such times. Yes—wax! How much do you know
of Harvey? Eight years ago he was a good-natured young fellow,
amusing himself with you two children. My dear, no doubt about that.
You were clever, and Hermione was pretty, and he had nothing to do.
He was kind, of course, but if you expect perfection in everybody
who is kind to you, I am afraid you are in for disappointments. Human
nature at its best is a very mixed concern. You don't look for
perfection, eh? No, not literally, perhaps; but you have a high
ideal, and you fancy now and then that you have found the ideal
embodied. Whereupon the embodiment falls short of the ideal, and
you—"

Marjory said only, "Yes," to this. Mr. Fitzalan changed his tone.

"You will never find it, except in One—in Christ. Human craving can
only be satisfied in Him. He alone comes up to the loftiest ideal,
and He alone can never disappoint our expectations. The best and
holiest of men and women do disappoint us more or less."

"Yes,—oh, I know, father."

"Knowing is not always believing, is it? After all, my experience
will not serve for you. Now go back to your couch, and have a quiet
hour. I will see to the roses."



CHAPTER III.

A "SISTER" FOR HERMIONE.

WITHIN the Hall library Mr. Dalrymple sat before a massive
escritoire, writing. All things in this commodious room were massive—
bookcases, chairs, couches, pictures, ornaments, above all this
central table, with its multitudinous drawers and receptacles.
The June sunshine blazed in through a large bow-window, falling
unheeded on the silver head of the old man.

He was tall and thin, and held himself erect, even at his desk, which
after seventy-five is not usual. The silvery hair curled still about
the finely-moulded head; and the clean-shaven delicate face,
a uniform pale bronze in hue, was steadfastly set to the work
in hand, the eyes fixed, the lips somewhat compressed.

Mr. Dalrymple spent the greater part of his life in this room. He had
been there now for hours off and on, writing letters, always writing
letters. A wide and varied correspondence was his, including the
personal management of his property, intercourse with the friends
of a long life, interchange of ideas with literary and scientific men
of note, and the perpetual response to perpetual appeals for money
or aid. People said he ought to keep a secretary, and he had made
the attempt, only to fail. Somehow he never could find a secretary
to suit him; the reason perhaps being that he never could endure
to let anybody answer his letters except himself.

"If you want a thing done, do it!" is a good piece of advice, within
limits. Mr. Dalrymple carried this principle to excess. He was very
independent; his friends said he never would be helped.

In habits of life he was most regular. He lived by rule, rose and
went to bed by rule, ate and drank by rule, worked and took
recreation by rule. His was no self-indulgent existence, governed by
the sway of his own desires. Always up at six o'clock, he had his
morning constitutional before breakfast, except in the depth
of winter; he had his ride with Hermione late in the afternoon; and
each hour between held its own occupation.

He was particular and precise in his employments—not in a
disagreeable fashion, but certainly in characteristic modes.
Every letter that he despatched left its exact copy behind, always in
Mr. Dalrymple's well-formed and beautiful handwriting. A secretary
might at least have copied these letters; but no, Mr. Dalrymple would
do the whole himself. Every drawer and pigeon-hole in the huge
writing-table had some special use assigned to it. Every paper
possessed by Mr. Dalrymple could be found without fail at five
minutes' notice.

Though far too well-balanced in mind and too dignified in manner ever
to fall into a hurry, there could be no doubt that Mr. Dalrymple was
a genuinely busy man. Absolute leisure had been with him a thing
almost unknown through forty years or more. As is often the case,
he worked harder and more incessantly than do, as a rule, those who
possess stated employments, and who have to earn their own living.
For Mr. Dalrymple was known to be a man of means, and was counted
to "have plenty of time on his hands;" therefore everybody, without
compunction, appealed to him. If the response was not always what the
appellant wished, at least no one was left without a response.

He was a good old man, this gentle yet prompt and resolute owner
of Westford. He had served a Divine Master steadfastly through forty
years. What he saw to be right he would do, no matter at what
personal cost.

Busy as were his week-days, his Sundays were far from idle. Alike in
summer and winter he might be seen at the early eight o'clock
Holy Communion; and his silvery head was rarely missing from the
Squire's pew during the morning and evening services. In the
afternoon he would wend his way down to the classroom of the
village-school, by Hermione's side, to teach a dozen village boys
great truths in simple words.

Certainly Gilbert Dalrymple, Squire of Westford, did not spare
himself; and the religion which he acted out on Sunday was by
no means laid to slumber through the week.

He had gone much into questions of the day; he had read books by men
of every shade of opinion; he had friends, wide asunder as the poles
from him and from each other in their views; yet his own faith had
lived unscathed through all oppositions, growing indeed and
deepening, but keeping ever its early purity. Even those of his
friends who differed most strongly from him, could not but feel
the weight of that child-like trust, shown forth, not by much speech,
but by a holy life.

For the trust was not in a theory, not in a doctrine, not in an idea,
but in a MAN—the one Perfect God-Man, our Crucified and Risen Lord.
It rested mainly not on arguments, not on skilled deductions, not on
cleverly-handled theories, but on the historic testimony of the early
Church, on the Divinely-written Word, and on his own personal
knowledge of that Risen Lord, who had "loved and given Himself"
for him—a knowledge which had sprung, as such knowledge alone can
spring, from the Master's revelation of Himself to His child.

Then, it may be asked, which comes first in order of time?—
the Master's revealing, or the child's seeking?—the knowledge or
the trust?

How can we tell? The hidden workings which lead to either
consummation lie beyond our ken. There cannot be knowledge without
trust, or trust without knowledge. There will not be either without
the use of God's provided Means; yet the Means of Grace are nought
without the Divine outpouring into and through them. There will not
be revealing without seeking, and there cannot be seeking without
revealing. As each increases, the other is increased thereby.
Attempting to define further, we find ourselves in a fog of terms.

As Mr. Dalrymple wrote, he lifted his eyes from time to time for a
glance towards the bow-window. A small davenport stood there, and
beside it a work-basket, also a lady's basket-chair. A little
half-made print frock had been dropped across the arm of the chair,
and a silver thimble lay on the davenport. It might have been
a child's thimble, but it was not.

This was Hermione's favourite retreat. She spent many an hour of each
day there, and was never so happy as in her grandfather's presence.
While he, busy as he might be, was never at rest in Hermione's
absence.

He struck presently a small gong, and the butler appeared.

"Where is Miss Rivers?"

"I am not sure, sir. She was, I believe, in the garden with Miss
Fitzalan. I will inquire if she is gone out."

Slade was a middle-aged man, highly superior and elaborately polite.
He had so quiet a step as to be suggestive of tip-toe, and no
excitement ever caused him to raise his voice above the suppressed
accents which he counted decorous.

"Do so," was the brief answer. "If Miss Rivers is in, ask her to come
to me."

Slade vanished, and Mr. Dalrymple went on writing. As each letter
came to an end, he read it through, copied it, folded it neatly,
enveloped, addressed, stamped, and laid it aside; placed the copy
in one drawer, and the answered letter in another; then turned his
attention to a fresh claimant. There were no signs of either haste
or weariness in the method of proceeding. Mr. Dalrymple seemed
interested and thoroughly business-like.

Rap-rap softly at the door; and enter Slade once more.

"Well?" Mr. Dalrymple said.

"I cannot find Miss Rivers, sir."

"Have you asked Milton?"

"I have, sir. Mrs. Milton is in ignorance."

"And Stevens?"

"Miss Rivers was in the orchis-house, sir, half-an-hour since.
Stevens saw Miss Rivers take the way of the shrubbery."

"Four o'clock. She will be in to afternoon tea," Mr. Dalrymple
observed.

"Yes, sir," assented Slade.

A pause.

"That will do," said Mr. Dalrymple. He had a dignified yet very
courteous manner of speaking to his servants.

Slade stood still, an anxious line across his forehead.

"If you please, sir, a gentleman desires to see you."

"A gentleman, eh?" Mr. Dalrymple looked up. "Who?"

"The gentleman desired me to say so much. He declined to send in any
name, sir."

"What is his business?"

"He appeared to prefer telling you himself, sir."

"Ha! somebody wanting money."

"No, I believe not, sir!" Slade spoke with emphasis.

Mr. Dalrymple gave the man a questioning glance, noted the anxious
horizontal line, and inquired, "Do you know who it is?"

Slade was truthful. The line deepened, but he replied, "I do, sir."

"And you don't feel at liberty to tell me?"

"Sir, the gentleman desired me not."

Mr. Dalrymple's expression was curious. He said simply, "You may show
the gentleman in."

Slade opened the door, and Mr. Dalrymple returned to his work.
He expected an interval of two or three minutes to elapse before the
caller should appear, and two or three minutes were in his estimation
too valuable to be wasted in idle waiting.

He did not see a figure just outside the door, or a silencing hand
raised when Slade would have spoken; nor did he see that as Slade
glided out somebody else glided in.

Five minutes or more went by before it occurred to Mr. Dalrymple that
Slade really was an unconscionable time absent. He lifted his eyes
involuntarily, and they fell upon a gentleman standing in an attitude
of careless ease not far from the writing-table.

The sunshine was full in Mr. Dalrymple's face, while the other stood
in shade. He rose politely, with an apologetic, "I beg your pardon.
I did not hear your name announced."

"It was not. I would not let Slade speak."

The voice agitated Mr. Dalrymple strangely, for it was the voice
of his only and beloved brother, dead many long years before. Harvey
had inherited from the grandfather, whom he had never even seen,
tones and tricks of speech to a singular degree. Mr. Dalrymple knew
in an instant who his visitor was—would have known had the room been
pitch dark.

"Harvey, my dear fellow!" he said, as three strides brought him round
the table.

It had been a matter of doubt with Harvey what manner of welcome
he  might find. True, his was not a prodigal's return, since he had
led a life free from vicious indulgences. Such things were "not in
his line," he would have said. He had only been unmanageably
indolent, and politely persistent in having his own way. Moreover,
although he undoubtedly "owed Mr. Dalrymple something," as Marjory
expressed it, he was an independent man of means; and since his own
father had lived till he was twenty-one, his great-uncle had never
possessed any legal control over his movements.

Still, Harvey Dalrymple was the old man's heir, and was at least
indebted to him for long kindness and affection. If Harvey had a
right to act for himself, Mr. Dalrymple had a right to be made aware
of his intentions. This, which Marjory felt keenly, Harvey ought to
have felt no less keenly.

Perhaps he did feel it, since he had hurried home before the end
of his honeymoon to explain and apologise; since too he certainly
counted on a measure of possible annoyance.

Even apart from the news of his marriage, he looked for something
of coolness. He knew that the eight years' absence had given
displeasure, and it had not occurred to him that sorrow might have
been so much stronger than displeasure as to render joy at his coming
the predominant sensation.

Whatever kind of reception he had pictured to himself as probable,
he certainly had not pictured this—the old man's two hands clasping
his in a fervent grasp, the faltering voice scarcely able
to articulate, the stately grey head bent and trembling.

"My dear fellow!" came again, and then, "I must sit down."

"You are not well?"

"Nothing, nothing—only the suddenness. Yes, quite well; it is
nothing."

"I ought to have given warning. How thoughtless of me!" said Harvey,
really contrite. "This way—" and he guided Mr. Dalrymple's uncertain
steps to an armchair. "I am sorry to have startled you so much."

Mr. Dalrymple motioned him to a second chair close by. Harvey obeyed
the gesture, and watched in grave silence the lessening
tremulousness.

"Hermione has not mentioned your health in writing," he said
at length; "and I did not suppose—"

"Nothing whatever is wrong with my health! Nothing whatever."
Mr. Dalrymple spoke almost testily. The very idea seemed to act as a
tonic, and he sat upright, looked braced. "No, I am only getting old;
and there is no cure for old age. But you have been much in my mind
lately. I have purposed to write, pressing for your return. It seemed
to me that the time had come."

"One hardly realises how the years fly," Harvey remarked a little
constrainedly.

"You think not. Perhaps, at your age. But it is enough to have you
here at last! Your coming removes a load from my mind. There is much
to see to, much to arrange. I have waited anxiously for this day.
And you have come home, I trust, weary of wandering."

"Like a vagabond, according to Sutton," observed Harvey, with a
forced laugh.

"But you have had enough; you will stay at home now," urged Mr.
Dalrymple, when Harvey would fain have evaded the question. "This is
always your real home."

"I am afraid—not long. I have engagements," Harvey said hesitatingly.
He could not resolve to speak yet of two nights only.

"Well, a few weeks will settle things, perhaps. We shall see.
And when you go, it will not be for eight years again!"

"I hope not, indeed. It ought not to have been," Harvey said, touched
with the gentle rebuke.

"You have not seen Hermione yet?"

"No; I am told that she has fulfilled her childish promise
of prettiness."

"More—more than fulfilled it. My child is very lovely, Harvey—
a strangely favoured being; and I am favoured in her." He gazed
earnestly at the young man. "When you see Hermione you will
understand. She is all sweetness—to me a being without fault. I never
have to blame my Hermione, for I find nothing to blame. Yet she is
natural, simple, girl-like; no forced hot-house plant. I do not fear
to say too much of her, for indeed she surpasses all I could say.
She is the sunshine of my old age. All who know her, love her as she
well deserves to be loved. I trust you will appreciate what she is.
My heart's dearest hope for years has been that you—"

Harvey could not let this go on. He broke in abruptly—

"Hermione and I are old friends. She has always been my little
sister."

Mr. Dalrymple shook his head.

"Second cousins only—no, no! I could wish a nearer—"

"And I hope nothing will ever break through that tie," continued
Harvey with haste. "By-the-bye, I have not told you yet my chief item
of news. What will Hermione say to me for giving her a new cousin—
a sister, if she will have me for her brother still?"

The word was repeated mechanically— "A sister!"

A minute of dead silence followed; then— "You mean—that you are
engaged?"

"I have been married for more than three weeks?"

To this no answer came. Silence reigned.



CHAPTER IV.

AFTER EIGHT YEARS.

"I OUGHT to have written, of course," Harvey went on. "But you know
how one puts off. It was a rather sudden affair, just at last.
Perhaps too I had a fancy that I would prefer to come and tell you
in person."

Still silence.

"Julia is an orphan. She has only one sister—a widow, with a little
child. I have left them together in Paris; but, of course—"

Continued silence.

"I am afraid it must seem unkind not to have communicated with you
beforehand, only—"

Another break. Harvey was at a loss how to carry on his remarks
in the face of this irresponsiveness. Though he would not say a word
that was not true, he did not wish to confess that he had purposely
abstained from appealing to Mr. Dalrymple until he should have put it
out of Mr. Dalrymple's power to interfere. Purposely, after a
fashion. Harvey was more apt to drift in the wake of his own desires
than to follow out a certain line of action determined on by himself.
Also, he undoubtedly was a procrastinator in the letter-writing line.
But beneath the usual putting-off in this case there had been a more
than usual unwillingness to yield to the temptation.

"Mrs. Trevor is the sister—Francesca Trevor. Badly off I am sorry
to say. That was one reason why I thought—why delay seemed
unadvisable. Julia was dependent on Mrs. Trevor, and, of course,
a young widow—"

Harvey came to another stop. It was evident that Mr. Dalrymple had
ceased to listen. He leant back in his chair listlessly, a pallid and
even shrunken look replacing the bronzed hue of health. None but
himself could know how sharply fell this blow, dispelling a
long-cherished dream.

For years Gilbert Dalrymple had dwelt upon the dream, until it had
grown into an almost certainty for the future. He had spoken of it
to his friends, till there were few in Westford, besides Hermione,
quite ignorant of his desire. He had, of course, been aware of the
possibility that either Hermione or Harvey might fail to care for the
other, but he had not realised it. He had scarcely allowed it, and
all difficulties had gone down in imagination before his intense
longing that Hermione Rivers, the darling of his old age, should
possess, through marriage, the estate from which she was cut off
by entail.

And now this hope was utterly at an end!

Mr. Dalrymple was not angry with his great-nephew—not nearly so angry
as was Marjory Fitzalan. It did not come upon him as a matter for
displeasure. That which had so grieved Marjory—the slight conveyed
to himself in Harvey's silence—scarcely weighed at all, for it was
lost in the sharper trouble of his slain desire. Westford never could
belong to Hermione! There lay the real grief.

It was not anger with Harvey which kept him silent and pale. Rather
he was displeased with himself, distressed at the strength and
stiffness of his own will shown by this test. He was used to take all
that came to him in life direct from Above, ignoring second causes;
and the disappointment which had now fallen came thus like everything
else. Yet Gilbert Dalrymple's whole being rose in protest against it,
because he craved his own way in life for his darling, not God's way.

Seventy-six years old, and his will not yet subdued! Shame, shame!
he told himself. This it was which bent the silver head and silenced
speech, which kept him from even hearing Harvey's lame excuses.
It did not trouble him, as Harvey had expected, that the wife brought
no money with her. He was thinking other thoughts.

Harvey made no further attempt to gain his attention, and prolonged
silence effected that which words had failed to effect. Mr. Dalrymple
came back from the contemplation of his ruined dream to the
consciousness of the present. He looked at Harvey, then at his watch,
and stood up slowly, laying a hand on the mantelpiece, as if for
support. The healthy hue had not returned to his face; it was pallid
and shrunken still. Harvey could not help thinking how the old man
had aged in these few years. Yet he had not thought so on his first
entrance.

"Past tea-time. Hermione will be waiting for us," Mr. Dalrymple said
absently.

"I shall not be sorry for a cup of tea after my walk from the
station," remarked Harvey, rising also.

"True—yes—I had forgotten." Mr. Dalrymple spoke vaguely, his hand
on the mantelpiece still. "Yes, we will go. There was something else
which I had to say; but—"

"Time enough, isn't there?" Harvey asked, in a cheerful manner.
He did not wish to have it supposed that he knew or guessed aught
of what had been passing in the other's mind. "I want to make
Hermione's acquaintance. She must have grown out of all knowledge."

Mr. Dalrymple's eyes were fixed upon Harvey.

"Yes; it is about Hermione," he said with earnestness. "Things have
been deferred too long. It has seemed to me—perhaps—that there might
be no occasion to—but I will have no more delay. I should wish
to look into certain business matters with you."

"Certainly. Another day," suggested Harvey. "I think you are fatigued
this afternoon, hardly up to business."

"I have done nothing to cause fatigue." Mr. Dalrymple spoke
decisively, yet as he crossed the room, leading the way, Harvey noted
a certain unsteadiness.

Slade stood in the hall, apparently on the watch

"Has Miss Rivers returned?" asked Mr. Dalrymple.

"Miss Rivers is in the drawing-room, sir—" Slade stopped, evidently
impressed by his master's unwonted paleness.

"Well?" Mr. Dalrymple said.

"Sir, I informed Miss Rivers that you were engaged; and Miss Rivers
desired me to let you know, when the interview should be over, that
she is waiting tea for you."

Mr. Dalrymple said, "Right," mechanically; and Slade opened the
drawing-room door.

"Grandfather! Oh, I am so glad. I was afraid from what Slade said—"

Hermione saw the stranger, and paused; then, with a pretty hesitating
air, she came forward.

There were three windows on one side of the room, and a glass door
at the farther end leading into a spacious conservatory, whence came
a blaze of geranium scarlet to the eye. Near this door a basket-table
held cup and saucers of Crown Derby china, a cosy of Indian
embroidery hiding the teapot. The room contained handsome ornaments,
as well as valuable oil-paintings, and the furniture was good, though
somewhat old, and of a subdued tone of colouring.

"Shall I be recognised? Don't introduce me," Harvey had said outside,
and Mr. Dalrymple complied, though he scarcely seemed to hear the
words. He crossed slowly to a favourite armchair, absorbed and silent
still.

Harvey's first glance was one of pure curiosity. He had at once
to confess to himself that neither Sutton, Marjory, nor his
great-uncle had been guilty of exaggeration. No tamer adjective than
"lovely" would do to describe the girl coming to meet him.

She was only nineteen, not very tall, but slightly over middle
height, and looking taller from her slenderness. The simple white
dress was unrelieved by any colour, except that of a blue enamel
brooch. The little head was well set on the little throat; and short
brown hair, in wavy natural clusters, set off a skin of peculiar
fairness. The nose was a trifle too short, but that is a fault on the
right side for a woman; the mouth was a trifle too wide; and the blue
eyes were not large.

All this, however, gives a poor idea of the true Hermione. For the
attractiveness, about which none who knew her failed to speak, dwelt
more in expression than in outline, more in manner than in form.

Harvey had seen many pretty girls in his lifetime but he had never
seen aught before quite like this: He cast his recollections back
to the child of eight years earlier, and marvelled.

There was a radiant happiness about Hermione's brow, a smiling
sunshine in the eyes, a buoyant sweetness of look and bearing,
indescribably fair. Form and colouring might perhaps have been
matched elsewhere, though not easily, but the wonderful joyousness
and grace of the whole being came upon Harvey as something unique.
She seemed to be one whose life hitherto had passed without a shadow.
Marjory Fitzalan's face carried already the traces of battling and
pain, but Hermione's bore no such sign.

She gave one glance at her grandfather, one glance at Harvey, then
drew near, her lips parted.

"Don't you know me, Hermione?" asked Harvey, and she sprang to greet
him with a flash of delight.

"Oh, I knew, I knew!" she cried. "I was sure it must be Harvey
himself! I knew you would come. Dear Harvey, I am so glad."

"And you will be my little sister still, after all these years?"
he asked, holding her hands in brotherly fashion.

"Why, Harvey, as if anything could ever alter that!" she cried.



CHAPTER V.

RIGHT AND WRONG.

"So you have never blamed me for my long absence, Hermione!"

More than an hour had passed since Harvey's first sight of his young
cousin. Mr. Dalrymple, after taking a cup of tea, and declining cake,
had returned to the library, rather to Hermione's surprise. This was
usually his accessible hour, if callers chose to come. Three callers
did choose to come, and they stayed long, but Mr. Dalrymple failed
to reappear. Hermione acted hostess with ease and grace, introducing
her newly-arrived relative, dispensing tea, and keeping up
conversation, her sunny sweetness never for an instant eclipsed.

Harvey watched her in some wonder. He had not expected this
development as a result of her "rustic" training and retired life.
Perhaps the absence of self-consciousness surprised him most; she had
been such a "vain little puss," he told himself, at eleven; and then
he almost thought that a touch of girlish shyness at nineteen may be
prettier than too complete self-possession. Yet how could he wish
anything altered when the entire effect was so charming? And after
all, was there really no consciousness of others' very patent
admiration? Not a conceited consciousness, but a happy confidence
in being able to please everybody. If it were so, was that a blemish?

He did not trouble himself to help her much in the way of talk. These
people, Mr., Mrs., and Miss Dalton, from a neighbouring village,
were comparative new-comers, and not interesting to him, not half
so interesting as was Hermione. Harvey commonly followed his own
inclinations in the matter of making himself agreeable.

So he let the chit-chat flow on, sparkling on the part of Hermione,
and more or less ponderous on the part of the other three, only
putting in a few words here and there when politeness rendered the
exertion a necessity, and keeping his attention fixed on Hermione
without appearing to do so. The Daltons, who, though not brilliant
themselves, could appreciate brilliancy in another, found him
"gentlemanly, but tedious— a rather dull person for one who had
travelled so much, and not to be compared with that delightful old
Mr. Dalrymple."

Harvey cared not a whit whether they liked him or no. He was only
amused at the variety of subjects which Hermione had at command
for their entertainment. She really did not need his aid. Miss Dalton
was a busy Parish-worker, and seemed to own no ideas beyond Parish
work, so Hermione went the round of schools, districts, and cottages
with her, smilingly interested all the while. Mrs. Dalton was
literary and semi-scientific in her tastes, therefore Hermione
launched out into a little sea of recent publications and discoveries
for the elder lady's edification. Mr. Dalton was a dabbler
in political and controversial subjects, and Hermione gave her
opinion upon each suggested point in turn, not conceitedly or
disagreeably, but with a gentle decision, and perhaps a sense that
her opinion was not altogether to be despised. Harvey could not help
calling to mind Marjory's words, "We all look up to her!" Did Mr.
Dalton too "look up" to this young creature of nineteen? His manner
was most deferential.

At length the callers departed, and then it was that some observation
of Hermione's drew from him the above remark, "So you have never
blamed me for my long absence." He had not yet divulged to her
his "chief item of news," having avoided the subject while Mr.
Dalrymple was in the room, and having been since prevented by the
presence of strangers. Now the time had come for speaking out.

"I do not quite know," she answered, looking up with her sunshiny
eyes. Harvey wondered if those eyes ever could be sad or grave.
"Only perhaps sometimes, when my grandfather seemed so worried, and I
could not think what kept you away. But Marjory would not let me
blame you."

"Marjory must be a very charitable individual."

"I don't know that she is. She does not try to excuse everybody."

Harvey laughed. The idea of Marjory making excuses for him
was amusing.

"I am very much obliged to her," he said. "Seriously, however,
I ought perhaps to have run home once or twice, if only for a few
days, for my uncle's sake."

"Yes; I have always thought so," she said, with a curious touch
of rebuke which immediately put him on the defensive. "It is not
as if you had been really unable."

"That is hardly a question about which you can come to a decision,"
he said, somewhat nettled.

The blue eyes were grave enough now.

"I thought you asked what I had felt. Marjory has always insisted
that we could not understand, that you must have reasons of your own.
I have let her say so; but I am not sure. You see, I know the
circumstances. I know you are well off, so it is no question
of expense, and you have no actual ties keeping you abroad.
Very often you have been too far-away to get home easily, but from
Germany or Italy surely it was possible. I do think dear grandfather
has had a right to see you, at least sometimes. I think you have been
wrong."

She might have been a woman of thirty sitting in judgment on a boy
of ten, so gently resolute was the manner. It was hardly to be
expected that Harvey should succumb to her judgment, he being a man
of thirty-two, and she a mere girl under twenty. He was alike
too gentlemanly and too good-natured to show anger to a lady,
but considerable meaning underlay the brief response—

"You think so!"

"Unless, of course, you had reasons," pursued Hermione, as if willing
to hear what he had to say for himself.

"I had reasons, undoubtedly."

"But—" Hermione looked at him and hesitated. Was she going to demand
those reasons? "But you will stay now, Harvey—now that you
have come!"

"Two or three nights."

"Not more! After eight years!"

"Hardly possible, I am afraid. You know a great deal about me,
evidently—" there was a touch of irony here— "still you are not
quite acquainted with all the circumstances of the case. There
happens to be a lady in the question. I hope you are prepared
to congratulate me."

The sunshine flashed back, and in a moment Hermione was again all
winning loveliness.

"Are you going to be married? I am very glad. My grandfather will be
so delighted. He has often said lately that you ought to think about
marrying. Who is it? What is her name?"

"Julia."

"And how old?"

"Twenty-one."

"Is she like me?"

"Not in the least."

"Pretty?"

"That may be a matter of opinion."

"And her surname?"

"Dalrymple."

"How strange. Is she a distant cousin?"

"I am not aware that we have any cousins within an appreciable
distance. Her name is Dalrymple now. A month ago she was Julia
Pilchard."

"A month ago! But you cannot mean—it is not possible—you are not
married already!"

"Yes. So you see I have, after all, something of an 'actual tie'
abroad—so long as Julia remains there."

Hermione was silent. Her face was grave once more, with a gravity
amounting to severity. She sat upright, one hand lying over the other
on her knee. How very young she seemed! Yet Harvey, lounging in a
chair opposite with his air of gentlemanly insouciance, had an odd
"naughty-boy" sense of being called to account by her for his
misdoings. It was quite absurd. He positively almost dreaded her next
words, and found it difficult to wind himself up to a due
indifference.

"Julia is an orphan, like yourself," he said, hiding the feeling
of embarrassment under a light manner. "She has only one sister,
a widow, Mrs. Trevor, several years older than herself. I met them
in Algeria last autumn, travelling for the sake of Mr. Trevor's
health. Three months ago I came across them again in a Swiss hotel.
Mr. Trevor had died before Christmas."

No answer came. Had Hermione taken unknowingly a leaf out of her
grandfather's book? She seemed to be thinking deeply.

"Mrs. Trevor is a most charming person. You will be delighted
with her. They were both in great trouble when I found them
at Chamouni—not alone from the death of Mr. Trevor. Mrs. Trevor had
just heard of a lost lawsuit, which meant ruin to herself and her
child—and to Julia also. Julia was dependent on her."

Hermione spoke at last in a low voice of displeasure. "Married! And
without a word to my grandfather! Does he know?"

"I told him immediately. That was my object in coming here."

"But not till a month afterwards! And all the love and kindness
he has shown—Marjory will not try to defend this!"

"Marjory's opinion can be of no possible importance," said Harvey,
secretly irritated.

"Was that why he seemed so unlike himself when he brought you in?
Yes, of course—I see now. I did not understand. Harvey, you will
excuse me, please. I must go to him."

Harvey rose as Hermione stood up. "Remember," he said, "my uncle
claims no authority over me. He could not claim it rightly. Whether I
should have acted with greater wisdom in speaking to him earlier,
is a question about which there may be two opinions. You, not knowing
all the circumstances of the case, hold one view. I hold the other."

Hermione's eyes met his reproachfully. "Authority—no," she said. "But
he ought to have heard: he had a right to know. It was wrong not to
tell him. Nothing can alter that."

"In your opinion!"

"I cannot imagine any circumstances that would make me think
differently."

"Possibly not."

"Right is right, and wrong is wrong. Nothing can change wrong into
right."

"Nevertheless the question does occasionally arise—What is right,
and what is wrong?"

"It may always be answered."

"Not always with absolute certainty."

"Yes; there is never any real difficulty where one is determined
on doing the right. If one is merely bent on pleasing oneself—"

Harvey made a mocking bow.

"I am not jesting," she said, and the blue eyes, attractive in their
soft gravity, were again lifted to his. "It is a serious question,
not at all a matter for jesting. So much depends upon the way
in which we do things. You know very well that a thing right
in itself may be wrongly carried out."

The sweet incisive tones paused, for Mr. Dalrymple entered. He looked
pale still, yet it was with a smile that he came forward, and laid a
hand on the young man's shoulder. To Hermione's surprise there were
no tokens of displeasure in his bearing.

"I did not intend to stay so long," he said. "More than an hour,
is it not? I must have been asleep, I think. Slade announced callers,
but I told him I would rest. My head is strangely heavy this
afternoon as if thunder were near. Are you both inclined for a stroll
on the terrace. Not a ride to-day, Hermione—somehow I do not feel
equal to it. Besides, I must see the most of this dear fellow while
he is with us. Perhaps on Monday a ride all together will be
pleasant. He must renew his acquaintance with the country."

"Very pleasant," Harvey assented, privately wondering whether he
would find it possible to carry out his plan of two nights only at
Westford. If not, what would Julia say?

Hermione had drawn close to her grandfather, and was gazing wistfully
into his fine clear-cut face.

"You have taken good care of your cousin," he said to her.

"Yes," she answered slowly.

"Come, then. Have you a hat at hand? I shall like a little
fresh air."

The terrace, a broad gravel-walk with huge flowerpots along it
at intervals, bounded one side of the house, and ran then for some
distance round a lawn of green velvet, enriched by flower-beds.
The roses were in full luxuriance, showing every possible tint from
pure white to deep red-black; and geraniums bloomed in scarlet and
crimson masses.

Hermione held one of Mr. Dalrymple's arms, unwontedly silent, as he
paced the terrace. He too was still a little absent and dreaming,
though he pointed out his favourite plants from time to time to the
young man walking on his other side.

It might have been expected that the three would have had more to say
one to another after eight years' separation. Conversation languished
greatly. So long as Hermione declined to assist, Harvey's efforts
seemed to be useless.

He gave her a glance now and then, growing provoked as the minutes
went on. Evidently hers was a silence of judicial displeasure, acted
out as a duty. She was looking wonderfully pretty in her white dress
and straw hat, the summer sunshine lending brilliance to her pure
skin. But after all, what business had she to take him to task in
this fashion?—she, a mere child, only nineteen in age, two years
younger than his young wife. And what did Hermione know about the
matter? He could not of course explain to her the old man's intense
desire for that which never could be, and never could have been.

No, never! Harvey felt this now more than ever. Fascinating as
Hermione might be, formed by nature to reign over the hearts
of others, she would never have done for him, even if he had not met
with Julia. "Much too angelic and infallible a being for a lazy
fellow like me!" he thought, with an inward laugh, while gravely
responding to an observation of Mr. Dalrymple's; "The Baroness
Rothschild, yes, a particularly fine specimen—splendid bloom—if only
it had a scent."

But Hermione could not know of Mr. Dalrymple's long-cherished desire,
once plainly uttered to Harvey. And Harvey would not have cared
to admit even to himself, much less to anybody else, the undefined
sense of weakness, which had made him so dread the moral coercion
of a stronger nature and will than his own, that he had absolutely
stayed away all these years from the fear of it. Then, when at length
he was taken captive by Julia Pilchard, a half-cowardly dislike
to the worry of possible opposition had come into play, and he had
deferred speech until opposition should be useless.

He was not indisposed now to allow politely that a different course
of action might have been on the whole better. But to submit
his deeds to the judgment of Hermione was another matter. If she had
excused him, he would have blamed himself—moderately. Since she
blamed him, he stood upon the defensive.

There is a right and a wrong in all things, sometimes absolute and
intrinsic, sometimes proportionate and relative. Some deeds are right
or wrong always, in all places, for all people. Other deeds are right
or wrong according to circumstances, and may at the self-same time
be right for this person, wrong for that person.

Hermione, earnest, conscientious, decisive, saw plainly the bald fact
of right being right, and wrong being wrong. Harvey, not half
so conscientious, not half so earnestly bent upon doing the right,
knew practically far more than did Hermione of the possible
perplexities which may and do arise in connection with this
ever-recurring question. But he knew also, if only he would have
allowed it to himself, that there had been no such perplexity
connected with the subject lately discussed.

So much for Harvey's train of thought as the trio walked the terrace
side by side. Hermione's ran on a parallel line, being chiefly
occupied with him. She was not grieved after the fashion of Marjory
Fitzalan, for Hermione's was not, like Marjory's, a hero-worshipping
nature. If Hermione worshipped any human being at all, it was all
unconsciously her most sweet and attractive self. But then,
of course, it was unconsciously. Other people she looked upon with a
calm and gentle kindness, ready to administer praise, blame,
or advice, as might be called for. Why not? Hermione was accustomed
to find her praise welcomed, her blame submitted to, her advice
followed. Almost everybody in her little world looked up to her,
as Marjory had said.

It was a somewhat unwonted position for a girl of her age, enhanced
by her extreme prettiness—not altogether a safe or wholesome
position.

Mr. Dalrymple's train of thought was less definite than that
of either of his companions. For he was grieving still over his
shattered dream, grieving yet more over his unconquered wilfulness,
and struggling against an unwonted sense of inertia and weariness.
He wished to be kind and chatty with his great-nephew, but it was not
easy.



CHAPTER VI.

IVY-LEAVES.

This was Saturday. Harvey had purposed remaining until Monday, then
spending one night in London, and starting for Paris next day. He had
told his young wife as much, almost promising not to be longer away.
Happily the promise had been modified by a condition— "if I can
possibly help it." He began to see that he hardly would be able
to help it.

"I do not think I can go into business matters to-night. My head
is so heavy still—there must be thunder brewing," Mr. Dalrymple said
after dinner. "I have always been sensitive to thunder. We must have
our talk on Monday. You will stay with us till the middle of the
week, at all events."

Harvey demurred, and Hermione's eyes rested upon him.

"After eight years!" she said.

"Not all brides would consent to even so much in the first month."

"That difficulty is not our fault," she rejoined in an undertone.

Harvey turned to Mr. Dalrymple. "I think I must say Tuesday,"
he remarked. "As you suggest, we can go into business on Monday
morning; and a ride in the afternoon would be pleasant. I should like
to visit old haunts."

"I must not ask more. We will be content with so much at the present
moment. But you will bring your Julia to pay us a long visit soon.
How soon?"

Harvey was touched again, as he had been before, with the old man's
acquiescence in disappointment. "Then you will give her a welcome!"

"My dear fellow! You and she are one now."

Harvey wondered if the widowed sister and her child would be welcomed
also. He did not care yet to confess having promised a home for the
present to those two. Mrs. Trevor was, or could be, a very agreeable
person; and since she had nothing now to live upon, his action was
undoubtedly kind. Nobody could question that fact. But he had somehow
a vague sense of having been "managed" in this arrangement, and he
objected to others guessing what he suspected. After all, if he chose
to add to his household, it was his own affair, certainly not
Hermione's. Minor matters such as this could be divulged later.

Hermione seemed more willing to converse after dinner, though her
first eagerness and warmth of manner had vanished. She showed Harvey
all due courtesy and attention as to a guest, not sisterly affection
as to a brother.

Mr. Dalrymple dropped asleep in his armchair, and Hermione remarked
that he often did so in the evening for ten minutes, only this day
it proved to be for a good deal longer. He slept on heavily, and when
roused by the entrance of coffee he dropped off again, leaving his
cup untasted. "I cannot think what makes him so tired," Hermione
remarked uneasily; and Harvey was struck anew with Mr. Dalrymple's
aged and wan look. He wondered that Hermione had never spoken in her
letters of a change. Could it have crept on so gradually as to be
unnoticed?

Sunday morning broke more cheerfully as to the household atmosphere,
though outside in clouds and rain. For once Mr. Dalrymple did not
appear until late. He had overslept himself, he said—the first time
for years past—and he inquired curiously if nobody had heard any
thunder. The air certainly had been charged with electricity the
night before, and this morning he had quite a headache, so very
unusual with him. But neither Hermione nor Harvey could speak of the
most distant peal or flash, and Slade, when appealed to, stated the
same in his suppressed tones.

"Well, well—it is an old man's fancy, I suppose!" and then
Mr. Dalrymple sat down to breakfast, but did not seem able to eat.

He talked freely, however, and was markedly affectionate to Harvey.
Hermione's manner too had thawed. Recollections of old days came up,
and time went on wings till they had to dress for Church.

"You will not come to-day, I suppose, as you are not well," Harvey
remarked to Mr. Dalrymple, but the old man seemed astonished at the
suggestion. Nothing short of absolute inability would have been
counted by him a sufficient reason for staying at home.

Rain had by this hour ceased, and the walk was pleasant in the soft
grey June atmosphere, clouds still low, but a bright promise
of future sunshine gleaming through them, and all trees and herbage
rejoicing in the past downpour. Hermione wore one of her favourite
white dresses, simple enough in make, and Harvey bore her waterproof
on his arm.

"You don't use the carriage for this?" he asked as they neared
the Church. It was a good half-mile of distance.

"No, no—not unless it were a matter of necessity," Mr. Dalrymple
said. "I like my men and horses to have as much as possible of a
Sunday, besides myself. Hermione and I are able-bodied people."

Then they were within the old building, replete for Harvey with
childish recollections. He seated himself purposely on that same side
of the square pew where he had been wont, long ago, to sit beside his
fair young mother.

Mr. Dalrymple and Hermione occupied another side of the pew, where
Harvey had them in full view. As the service went on, he was
impressed with the old man's reverence of manner and look of deep
devotion. There was no lounging, no seeking after positions of ease,
no occupation with others present. Mr. Dalrymple, albeit pallid still
and manifestly not well, stood and sat and knelt as required, with no
apparent relaxation in his fixed attention. That was genuine worship,
and Harvey knew it.

He did not trouble himself to question what manner of worship his own
might be. Marjory Fitzalan claimed his attention next. She was in a
pew near, and she too looked pale, even suffering. The long bout
of continuous sitting and kneeling was a trial to Marjory's physical
powers, and the body was not with her subservient to the spirit,
as with Mr. Dalrymple. She wore a worried and depressed air.

Then there was Hermione. Harvey came back to her, casting little
glances from the hymn-book which he decorously held open, without any
attempt to join in or even to follow the words of praise. He could
understand Sutton's use of the word "angelic." Hermione really did
look lovely, her blue eyes bent upon the open page, her lips parted
as she sang, her face lighted up with a glow of reverent devotion,
which might almost have been a reflection of her grandfather's.
Was it so genuine as his? and was she at that moment absolutely
absorbed, absolutely unconscious of the pretty picture she made?
Harvey was disposed to answer both questions in the negative. Like
people who are very lenient to themselves, he was not very lenient
to others; not disposed always to take the most charitable view
of their actions or motives.

*       *       *       *       *       *       *

To Harvey's astonishment the service was at an end, and only the
sermon remained. He had scarcely heard a word of the whole. As for
any amount of prayer, praise, or adoration on his part, the less said
the better, perhaps.

The sermon following was good, forcible, and well worked out. Harvey
was not much in the habit, however, of listening to sermons. He sat
through them as a kind of duty—whether a duty to himself, to the
clergyman, or to society, he would have been at a loss to specify—
but he did not commonly take in their sense. Listening means trouble,
and Harvey disliked trouble. His attitude of polite endurance was a
contrast to the earnest attention of the two seated opposite. Harvey
did not even notice the text.

That window, how well he remembered it! The green ivy-leaves
clustered around it outside still as of yore, and a gleam of sunshine
came filtering softly through the leaves and the tinted panes.
The vivid fancy of his childhood came back too, and once more
in imagination he seemed to see his mother, clothed in white,
mounting upwards by a pathway of wreathed leaves and glowing light—
upwards to a far-off land of joy.

Only a child's fancy, of course; but Marjory had declared that
children "see farther" sometimes than grown people. After all,
why not? A child's picturing may well approach nearer to some
grand reality than a man's forgetfulness of it.

Had Harvey any belief in such a land now? Well, yes, after a fashion,
no doubt. Practically he knew that this little life may not go on
for ever, and he hoped for something agreeable beyond when that
beyond had to be reached. He was in no hurry at all to go to heaven;
still he did not, of course, wish to go anywhere else after death
except to heaven.

"But now 'tis little joy
To know I'm farther off from heaven
Than when I was a boy!"

Marjory's quotation flashed up suddenly; he had heard the words years
before, and had forgotten their existence till Marjory recalled them.
Now they obtruded themselves persistently, not to say impertinently.
He could shut off the sermon, but he could not shut off Marjory's
quotation. It haunted him, buzzed about him, so to speak, drowning
the quiet voice of Mr. Fitzalan, winding in and out of the green ivy
which circled the window, saying itself over and over, dying away and
reviving again.

"But now, 'tis little joy—little joy—now—now—now—'tis little joy—
to know I'm farther off—farther off from heaven—farther off from
heaven—than when I was a boy—a boy—than when I was a boy!"

Harvey roused himself with a slight start at the sound of Mr.
Fitzalan's "And now—" to find the sermon ended, the congregation
rising. He had been sound asleep in his corner. He could only hope
that nobody had observed the fact.

But Hermione's eyes wore a look of rebuke, and Marjory's quotation
stayed by him still.



CHAPTER VII.

JUNE SUNSHINE.

"MR. DALRYMPLE did not look quite himself to-day," remarked Mr.
Fitzalan, as he sat down with Marjory to the cold early dinner usual
on Sunday at the Rectory.

"I don't wonder," rejoined Marjory.

Mr. Fitzalan asked "Why?" not following her train of thought.

"Harvey!" was the comprehensive answer.

"Harvey! You mean the fact of his marriage. Yes, that might worry
Mr. Dalrymple in some measure. Hardly to the extent of affecting
his health."

"I don't know. There must be the feeling that he can never trust
Harvey again."

"Trust him—how?" Mr. Fitzalan was fond of delving to the roots
of things and words.

"Father, you know what I mean." Marjory's tone was a degree petulant,
and a dent appeared on her brow.

"There are degrees and varieties of trust. You suppose that Harvey
will be henceforward materially lowered in Mr. Dalrymple's opinion.
I am not so sure."

"He must be lowered; he cannot be anything else."

"That depends upon the stand which he has taken hitherto,—in Mr.
Dalrymple's opinion, I mean. He is not lowered in mine."

"Father!" The expression of the emotions in Marjory could at this
moment no further go.

"I don't say that I approve of his action. I merely say that my
opinion of him is not altered. He has always been a very pleasant
fellow, willing and even anxious to please everybody, after himself.
So much as that I have trusted him, and so much I may trust him
still. He does not wish to distress anybody, and so far as is
convenient he will make up for any distress which he may have given.
It is not all men who would run away from a bride of three weeks
to soothe the feelings of a great-uncle."

"Why did he not bring her with him?"

"Rather a startling step, under the circumstances. Suppose he had
telegraphed, 'Expect my wife and myself by such-and-such a train!'"

"But if he had written earlier—if he had written at first."

"Yes, there it is. I don't defend the action, Marjie. I only say that
it is nothing new, that it is the same Harvey whom we have known.
He does not object to doing what is right, but he will do what is
wrong rather than be inconvenienced. And he is ready to do any amount
of kindness, after a lazy fashion, only self must be considered
first."

"I don't think his hurrying home from Paris was lazy."

So Marjory had actually begun to defend her quondam hero.

Mr. Fitzalan laughed to himself in a noiseless style.

"Laziness has a variety of developments," he said, and the subject
was dropped.

Not, however, for very long. Dinner over, Marjory had one of her
necessary short rests on the couch, for she was far from strong.
She lay perfectly still, after her usual wont, with shut eyes, and
long thin fingers lightly crossed, not knowing, and for the moment
not much caring, what other people were after. Very soon she would
have to rise and bestir herself for afternoon Sunday-school.
The short intervening space had to be utilised to the utmost.

Mr. Fitzalan's voice in the passage broke in upon her stillness.

"Hermione! How do you do? You are early to-day, and alone."

"Yes; I came to make excuses for my grandfather," Hermione's silver
voice answered. "He seems to feel the heat so much, I have persuaded
him to stay in for once, and Harvey is there too, so it really
is best. Can you possibly manage without my grandfather?"

"Certainly. If no one else can take his class, I will do it myself.
Come and see Marjory. You need not start for a few minutes."

"No. I thought you would rather know in good time."

Hermione entered, fresh, fair, and smiling, not in the least heated
with her hot walk. Somehow she always looked the same. Marjory did
not rise, for Hermione was never treated as a guest here. The younger
girl bent in her graceful manner for a kiss, and then sat down near
the couch.

"It is a lovely day," she said.

"Too hot for Marjory," Mr. Fitzalan observed. "Mr. Dalrymple was not
quite himself this morning, I think, was he?"

"No. It is the worry about Harvey."

Marjory's eyes opened more widely for a glance at her father.

"So Marjie has been saying," he remarked, "But Mr. Dalrymple has not
been entirely as he should for some weeks."

Hermione wore an incredulous air. "He is very well and strong
generally," she said. "Nothing was wrong with him until Harvey came."

"You have not noticed any difference? Well, I would keep him quiet.
Don't let him exert himself. He is not so young as he was. And tell
him from me not to think of Church this evening. Perhaps I may look
in afterwards to see how he is."

Hermione was not so fond of receiving as of giving directions.
Mr. Fitzalan often aroused in her a small spirit of opposition.
She could not have told why, even if she was aware of the fact.
Perhaps it was because he did not exactly rank as one of her
devotees. Hermione was so accustomed to be "looked up to," as Marjory
expressed it, that she could hardly understand being looked upon
in any other mode; and though Mr. Fitzalan was most kind and
fatherly, he did not bow to her opinion, nor did he cease treating
her somewhat as if she were still a child. Hermione loved him as a
dear old friend, but sometimes without doubt he did provoke her
a little.

She would not pursue the subject of Mr. Dalrymple's health, but said
with her pretty girlish dignity, "Harvey has behaved very wrongly.
I do not wonder that my grandfather is unhappy."

"Has he told you any particulars about the lady of his choice?" asked
Mr. Fitzalan, rather anxious to ward off an exciting duet
of condemnation between the two girls. Marjory looked worn enough
already. He knew that a very little more would incapacitate her
for the afternoon's work.

"Not much. I have not cared to ask," Hermione answered. "He does not
deserve that we should show interest. Her name is Julia—
Julia Pilchard it was-and she is two years older than I am."

"Ah, a mere chicken," murmured the disrespectful Rector.

Hermione would not notice the interruption. She held herself a little
straighter, and proceeded, "Two years older than I am, and Harvey
does not seem to know whether she is pretty. That means of course
that she is plain. She has only one sister, a widow with one little
child. They lost all their money lately. Harvey says I shall like the
sister; but I do not know; I do not much care. All this is beside the
mark. Harvey has forfeited all right to our sympathy. My grandfather
is most kind and forgiving—far more than Harvey deserves. But for me
it is different. I have to show what I think for my grandfather's
sake, not for my own."

"Take care, Hermione. Self is very subtle."

Mr. Fitzalan hardly spoke the words, he breathed them rather.
Hermione's colour deepened a little.

"You do not understand me," she said in a voice as low as his, with a
touch of reproach.

"It may be so. But is it certain that you and I perfectly understand
Harvey?"

"I understand the circumstances of the case. There can be no mistake,
and no excuse."

Mr. Fitzalan made one negative movement of his head, the expressive
eyes saying much that he did not put into words. He at least knew
more of those circumstances than Hermione could know; and while not
at all disposed, as he had said, to defend Harvey's manner
of proceeding, he could make allowance for the difficulties
of Harvey's position; he could believe that this sharp cutting of the
Gordian knot had been done from motives not altogether thoughtless
or unkind, though in his estimation mistaken. His view of the affair
was perhaps even more indulgent than Harvey's own view, just because
he was better acquainted with the strength of Mr. Dalrymple's desire,
and the persistency of Mr. Dalrymple's will.

But he was aware that to argue the question with Hermione would be
fruitless, and he turned from her towards the couch.

"Marjie, are you fit for school this afternoon?"

"Yes, father. Is it time to go?"

"Nearly. Time for you to get your hat, I am afraid. Would you not
rather stay at home?"

"O no. I can't be spared."

She went at once for hat, parasol, and books, struggling against
a degree of lassitude which even her father did not suspect, or he
would have insisted instead of only suggesting. There were no
lounging airs or gestures of fatigue, such as many people adopt
in not very strong health; and she would not allow herself to lag
behind the other two in their ten minutes' walk to the schoolroom.
Rather oddly it had been built at the farther end of the village,
not near the Church.

Clouds were gone, and the June sun blazed in through the schoolroom
windows, not much softened by yellow blinds. Children and teachers
were alike languid that day, with the exception of Hermione, who sat
upright in her white dress, cool and collected, speaking with ready
words and earnest persuasive looks. She was a very successful
Sunday-school teacher. The worst children in the school were by
common consent handed over to her, and Hermione could do what she
chose with any of them.

Marjory, a few yards off, just struggled through her lesson and no
more, the last half hour being one long haze of exhaustion. Once a
rush of sounds filled the air, and the row of little sleepy faces
receded into a far distance; but Marjory talked on resolutely, not in
the least knowing what she said, and somehow things came back to
their normal condition. She said nothing to anybody about herself;
only hoped she had not spoken utter nonsense, dismissed her children,
collected books, and did various small things which always fell to
her share. Then she crept home uncomplainingly through the hot sun,
wondering at each step how many more would be possible, and on
reaching the Rectory dropped down upon her couch. She had done
her utmost for that day.

Hermione had farther to walk, but her light step never faltered.
She found her grandfather seemingly better, strolling in the garden
with Harvey, and enjoying a long chat. Hermione did not give
Mr. Fitzalan's message. She was rather averse to doing so, she could
hardly have told why, and she decided that there really was no need.

After all, "Grandfather was the best judge."



CHAPTER VIII.

FOR THE FUTURE.

THE evening service was over, and so was the cold evening meal which
followed. Mr. Dalrymple had been by no means sorry for the help
of Harvey's strong arm on the way home. His head felt "heavy" again,
he said, and once or twice he seemed not able to walk straight.
"It was only the heat," Hermione decided; "such extreme heat
for June." And, as she told herself, he was less knocked up than
Marjory.

But physical weakness was with Marjory the ordinary condition
of affairs, a part of herself, a thing to be regretted, yet not to
cause alarm. Sudden feebleness, coming upon a strong and healthy man,
is altogether another matter; and young as Hermione was, she might
have known that difference.

She did for a moment feel uneasy when Harvey remarked, "You ought not
to have gone to Church this evening;" and her grandfather answered,
"No; I almost wish I had not." Would it not have been better if she
had given the message? But Mr. Dalrymple might not have followed
the advice; and a good-night would restore him. On the whole,
however, Hermione hoped for the non-appearance of Mr. Fitzalan.

They were out upon the terrace now, enjoying the still twilight.
Mr. Dalrymple was in a comfortable easy-chair, which Harvey had
insisted on dragging out of the library. He did not mind trouble
of that description, being too thorough a gentleman not to undertake
small courtesies. As Mr. Fitzalan had remarked, laziness takes
different forms, and certainly Mr. Dalrymple had found his great
nephew most kind and attentive all day, ready to anticipate every
wish.

[Illustration: "They were out on the terrace enjoying the still
twilight."]

None of the three showed at first much inclination to talk. After a
while, Harvey broke in upon the silence, remarking, "Delicious scent
of roses."

Mr. Dalrymple offered no response, and Hermione started another
subject, "What interesting sermons we have had to-day!"

Another irresponsive pause.

"Did you not think so?" she asked, looking at Harvey.

Was the question malicious? Harvey was too honest to answer in the
affirmative. He said only, "Were they?"

"This morning's particularly. Yes, I thought so. Did not you?"

"I am not a very good judge," Harvey replied carelessly.

"Were you talking about this morning's sermon?" Mr. Dalrymple asked,
rousing himself. "What was the text? I cannot recall."

"I must refer you to Hermione," said Harvey, at whom the question
was directed.

"Hermione is sure to know," the old man uttered lovingly.

"Yes, grandfather;" and in silvery tones she repeated, "'Know ye not,
that to whom ye yield yourselves servants to obey, his servants
ye are whom ye obey; whether of sin unto death, or of obedience unto
righteousness?' With part of a verse just before, 'Yield yourselves
unto God.'"

"Yes, my dear."

"Mr. Fitzalan spoke about the nature of the service as bondservice.
Don't you remember, grandfather? That if we yield ourselves to God,
we are bound to obey Him in everything; and if not yielded to Him,
then we must be yielded to evil, bondservants to the Prince of Evil.
I thought all that was very striking, the way he put it. And about
the mastery of self too, the being slaves to self, or freed from
self." Hermione hesitated an instant, recalling his utterance at the
Rectory, which she had not so well approved; then she went on—
"He spoke about the choice being left to us, though God has of course
absolute right to our service—but still we are told—'Choose you this
day whom ye will serve,' and then, 'Yield yourselves unto God.' Yes,
it was very beautiful. And all about what is meant by yielding—
real yielding—having no care for our own will, but only caring
to please God."

Harvey counted an after-abstract of the day's sermons highly
unnecessary. He was not interested in the said sermons, and to sit
through them without listening seemed to him a sufficient tax upon
his patience. Moreover, he was no more disposed to take
Mr. Fitzalan's teaching secondhand from Hermione, than Hermione
was to submit with meekness to Mr. Fitzalan's dictum, except as
uttered from the pulpit. So he stirred restlessly, causing the
wicker-work of his chair to utter long creaks, as a vent to his
dissatisfaction.

"Would you not like another chair?" asked Hermione, disturbed by the
squeaks.

"Thanks—no. This is very comfortable."

Mr. Dalrymple spoke next in quiet tones. "Yes, it is a blessed
service," he said. "But the yielding of ourselves is not a matter
of one moment's resolving or doing, as some would have us believe.
It is a long battle."

"Only there has to be first the yielding of our will, grandfather.
We have to give ourselves to Christ; and then, once yielded to Him,
will He not keep His own?" She had an air of quiet certainty, and her
face was bright in the twilight.

"My child, yes, He is faithful. But He will send tests. He will allow
us to learn our weakness. That is part of the whole—part of the
battle. Yours is only beginning. Mine is nearing the end. 'I have
fought a fight,'—not 'a good fight' like St. Paul's, only a long
fight with many failures. And He has been with me throughout.
The 'crown of glory' is laid up—ready—safe in His keeping."

Harvey could listen now without any inclination to fidget. There was
a humble reality in the old man's confidence which touched him, and
even aroused in him a vague wish to possess the same—unlike
Hermione's confidence. It vexed him that she should break in upon the
dreamy soliloquy—

"But, dear grandfather, you don't really think that one never can
have yielded up one's will and one's all to God until after very long
fighting? Why should there be delay? Why not yield one's all
at once?"

He smiled at her tenderly.

"The sapling doesn't grow into a great oak in one hour, Hermione.
Yes; yield yourself now—self, will, and all, keeping nothing back.
But you will find more and more to yield as you go on—hidden depths
of self, unsuspected forms of wilfulness; and much that you have
thought yielded you will find not yielded. That has been one of my
latest lessons. It may be one of your latest."

"Would you say that we are never to have a will or a wish of our
own?" Harvey asked unexpectedly.

Hermione began, "No, never—" but he turned from her, with two words
which plainly directed the question to Mr. Dalrymple— "Would you?"

"Yes, my dear boy, any amount, only never apart from God's will.
Give over everything to Him, and He will give back to you tenfold
what you have yielded up."

Harvey seemed to be thinking. Hermione, a little offended, remained
silent. Mr. Dalrymple presently moved, as if to stand upright.

"I almost think I will go in, if you will both excuse me," he said.
"I am over-tired to-night. We will discuss everything to-morrow."

"Are you going to bed, grandfather?"

Hermione had never known such an event before as retirement before
his usual time.

He put an arm round her waist, kissing the fair brow, and holding out
a hand to Harvey.

"Yes; it is fatigue, I suppose. I shall be all right to-morrow, after
a good-night. I do not feel that I can stay up any longer."

Harvey offered his arm, and they went, all three, through the
conservatory into the lighted drawing-room.

"Thanks, my dear boy. It is a great comfort to have you here.
You must come again very soon, and stay long, you and your Julia.
I begin to feel that I am an old man, and it is a comfort to know
that my Hermione has a kind brother—a brother and sister too—who will
care for her."

"Yes, indeed," the young man said heartily.

"Yes, you would do it—would do all—will do all when the need arises.
I have complete trust in your kind feeling. You will be a true
brother to my darling—always!"

"Always!" repeated Harvey.

The word was very simple, but it had the force of a solemn promise
in his estimation, he could hardly have said why.

Hermione stood somewhat apart, not moved by this as Harvey would have
expected, but rather seeming not quite to approve of it. When Mr.
Dalrymple turned for another "Good-night" of peculiar tenderness,
her response was even a little cold. Whether Mr. Dalrymple noticed
the fact it was impossible to tell. He went quietly from the room.

Half-a-minute of silence followed. Hermione remained motionless,
the lamplight falling upon her dropped eyes. Harvey wished she would
be so good as to sit down, that he might do the same, but she did
not. The silence was broken by her voice.

"My grandfather is not well."

"I am afraid not."

"He was perfectly himself until you came. It is the worry."

"Are you sure he has not been failing at all? One does not always
notice at first, but he has a worn look—hardly the result of one
day's worry."

Mr. Fitzalan's words recurred to Hermione, but she put them aside,
and answered in resolute tones, "Quite sure. I have never seen him
like this before."

"In that case, I think you would be wise to have advice for him
without delay. Yes; to-night—why not?"

"What is the use? It is only that he is unhappy."

"I don't wish to contradict a lady, of course, but he seems to me
to be thoroughly unwell."

"Only because of that," she persisted.

"If you are absolutely certain to be in the right, discussing the
matter will do little good," Harvey could not help saying. "But I
have seen something of illness."

"He is worried, not ill. It is enough to upset him. If only you had
written openly from the first! I do not wonder that he feels it
so much."

Harvey ignored this.

"Then you will not even ask if he would like to see Mr. Pennant?"

"Now? No; it is half-past nine. I shall see how he is in the morning,
of course. Will you read prayers to-night, as he cannot?"

She did not speak curtly. Voice and manner were always soft and
gentle, yet Harvey knew that every intonation meant displeasure.

"I have no objection, if it is a matter of reading only."

"Yes; we always have a short psalm on Sunday, and I will show you
the prayer that my grandfather would use."

Hermione seated herself with a book, and little more passed between
the two until the bell sounded and they went to the library. It was
the first time within Hermione's recollections that she had ever been
there for this purpose without her grandfather. His absence gave her
a desolate feeling. She wished she had kissed him more tenderly, had
asked more anxiously after his condition. Mr. Dalrymple was an old
man, and not given to unimportant ailments. What if anything at all
serious were impending? Might it not even now be best to send for Mr.
Pennant, and ask him to look in for five minutes, just to see that
nothing was really wrong? Mr. Pennant was so kind, he would not
object, even should the errand prove to have been unnecessary. But,
on the other hand, it was getting late, and most likely there was no
need, and Mr. Dalrymple would dislike a fuss; and, besides—besides—
why should Harvey manage things? He had behaved so ill—had forfeited
all right to interfere. No, she would wait till the morning, and then
certainly Mr. Pennant should be summoned, if Mr. Dalrymple were not
better.

Hermione wore a reverent manner, but she heard not one word of the
psalm which Harvey read, or of the prayer which followed.

After that they went to bed.



A soft rapping at Harvey's door roused him next morning from
comfortable slumbers.

"All right," he answered drowsily, under the supposition that boots
and hot water would be deposited outside. But the rapping went on,
and in another moment he was wide awake.

A glance at his watch showed him that it was only half-past six,
a full hour and more before he was usually called. He had a trick
of locking his door at night, the fruit of foreign travel, therefore
to say "Come in" was useless. He sprang up, flung on his
dressing-gown, and turned the key.

Slade entered, subdued in manner and suppressed in voice, according
to his wont. It was not Slade's way to get into a flurry. But the
line across his forehead had grown into a deep rut, his hands
trembled, and he shut the door behind him, as if fearing to be
overheard.

"Anything wrong?" asked Harvey.

"Yes, sir—I am not sure," Slade answered under his breath. "I am
sorry to disturb you so early, sir, but would it trouble you very
much to come and take a look at my master? Mrs. Milton and me don't
know what to make of him, sir; and it don't seem right to frighten
Miss Rivers without there's good reason."

"No, certainly; don't say a word to her. I'll come in three minutes.
He is not ill, I hope?"

Slade went into a brief explanation. At six o'clock punctually
Mr. Dalrymple expected to be called, and this office was always
undertaken by Slade himself—more from love to his master than because
it appertained to his post. Personal attendance upon Mr. Dalrymple
was Slade's delight.

As a rule the old man was found to be already wide awake by six
o'clock, and it was rarely indeed that, as on the previous day,
he should fall asleep again. But this morning Slade had rapped and
rapped in vain. No voice answered, so at length he went in. He found
Mr. Dalrymple in a heavy slumber. Slade spoke, and Mr. Dalrymple
murmured indistinctly something about— "My head!—don't disturb me—"
dozing off again immediately. Slade did not think very much of it
at the first moment, and left the room; but presently a sense
of uneasiness crept over him, and he sought the housekeeper, who took
alarm at once.

"And we went back, sir, but we couldn't get any answer, not either
of us," Slade continued. "And Mrs. Milton pulled up a blind, and let
in the light—and then we saw, sir!" Slade's voice shook, and his face
grew paler. "And Mrs. Milton said I'd best call you directly, for we
don't like his look."

"Wait outside for me—three minutes," Harvey answered.

Scarcely more than the three minutes passed before he appeared,
already dressed. The two went down the passage silently, entering
Mr. Dalrymple's room.

Milton stood beside the bed, watching, and she turned upon Harvey
a pair of distressed appealing eyes. Harvey gave her a glance, but at
first he said nothing, only stooped to examine the face, to lay his
fingers on the wrist. Slade waited near the door, trembling still
with agitation, almost sobbing.

But that changed responseless face!—no wonder they had not "liked his
look."

"Send for Mr. Pennant," Harvey said.

"Yes, sir. Sir, you think—" faltered Slade.

"Send at once—not a moment's delay!"

Yet as Slade vanished, he bent again to look narrowly under the
half-closed eyelids, and almost unconsciously a mutter passed
his lips—

"No use! Poor Hermione!"

Mrs. Milton burst into tears.



CHAPTER IX.

JULIA HERSELF.

"FRANCESCA—"

"Yes."

"What time did Harvey say he would arrive?"

"My dear! as if you were not a great deal more likely to know than
I am. Now, Mittie—you are after some mischief with my work-basket."

"Yes; but I want to see if your recollections agree with mine. He was
in such a hurry just at last. I don't think I quite heard what he
said."

"Harvey generally is in a slow hurry just at last. Like most men who
always put off everything as long as possible. Oh, he will appear
some time this evening, never fear. Unless he changes his mind, and
puts off till another day. Not so very unlikely, after all. He has
not seen this ancient uncle of his for a good many years."

"Harvey will not put off. I want to meet him at the station."

"Julia! What nonsense! You and I are going for a drive on the
boulevards."

"I don't care for a drive. I want to meet Harvey."

"And go through an ecstatic meeting in public! All very well if he
were a Frenchman or a German. Unfortunately he is English, and
doesn't appreciate gush. Depend upon it, he will be much better
pleased if you leave him alone to walk in when he chooses. Mittie,
come away from that basket."

"He said he would be with us in time for table d'hôte, I know."

"Well—then, that is all right. We shall manage our drive first.
I have some shopping to do, which I can't possibly put off. Mittie!
do you hear? Leave that basket alone."

The little girl just glanced up with an air of placid independence,
and went on fumbling. The raised tone of her mother's order, and the
slight stamp of her mother's foot, produced no impression whatever.
Mrs. Trevor was plainly not "used to command" successfully with her
only daughter.

The ladies occupied a comfortable private sitting-room on the second
floor of a first-class Paris hotel. The windows, thrown wide open
for air, looked down upon a busy, not to say noisy street. It was not
one whit too busy or noisy for Francesca Trevor, whose idea
of happiness was to live in a whirl. Julia Dalrymple's tastes were
not altogether the same.

Little resemblance might be found between the two sisters in outward
appearance. Julia was tall; not slight, but very well proportioned,
and in colouring a decided brunette. Whether she could be called 
pretty or no, might be, as Harvey had told Hermione, "a matter
of opinion," probably depending a good deal upon passing moods.
If so, the present mood was hardly favourable. She seemed restless
and teased, and the black eyes, by nature soft, had a strained look
which could not be called beautiful.

Mrs. Trevor was half a head shorter than Julia, rounded and plump
in make. While really years the older, she was still far too
young-looking for the mother of a child of eight. Though strictly not
in the least handsome, she nevertheless managed so to make the best
of herself as never to be entirely passed by. Of all earthly horrors,
that of "being passed by" would have seemed to Francesca Trevor one
most to be dreaded. So she had cultivated attractive manners, and
every item of attire that she wore was always carefully studied
with a view to effect. Of course she had still to wear mourning,
but too much soberness was obviated by sparkling jet, and her flaxen
hair was elaborately arranged under the slight apology for a widow's
cap which rested on the summit.

Mittie Trevor, standing near a window, calmly searching with small
fingers in her mother's work-basket, had inherited an abundance
of that same fair hair, rising in flaxen masses over her brow and
falling in flaxen masses to her waist; while with this she had
inherited the same large black eyes, soft and serious, as her Aunt
Julia. Mittie was an extremely pretty child, and just the child whom
a weak mother would be disposed to spoil. Francesca Trevor had
character enough of a certain stamp, but she never seemed to possess
the slightest notion of training a child to obedience.

Few would have guessed Mrs. Trevor to be a ruined widow, almost
wholly dependent for herself and her little girl upon the kindness
of a brother-in-law. Not absolutely dependent, since she possessed
some eighty pounds a year of her own; but Mrs. Trevor counted eighty
pounds a small allowance for dress.

"You can drop me at the station, on your way to the shops,
Francesca."

"I am not going in that direction, thanks."

Julia was silent. Certainly no one would have imagined on the face
of things, that she was the woman of property and Mrs. Trevor the
poor dependent.

Mrs. Trevor looked once more towards the child.

"Mittie!"

"Yes, mother."

"Leave my basket alone."
"Yes, mother. I want a bodkin."

"Well, you have bodkins of your own. I don't want my basket tumbled
in that fashion." A pause. "You should have asked leave first."

Mittie searched on undaunted, and presently extracted the desired
article from a tangle of silks and cotton.

"Now just see, you naughty child, the state my things are in. I have
a great mind to make you put them straight."

"I am sure I would," murmured Julia, as Mittie went off to the window
and there sat down.

"Mittie! Do you hear? You ought to put my basket tidy." No response
from the cloud of flaxen hair, which was now about all that could be
seen of Mittie beyond a table. "Well—I suppose I shall have to do it
myself."

"I would not," Julia said in an undertone.

Mrs. Trevor paid no attention to the remark, but perhaps it was not
without effect, for she presently remarked, "You have been a very
naughty disobedient girl, Mittie. I have a great mind not to take you
for a drive."

Mittie did not stir. She only answered placidly, "If you don't,
mother, I shall cry."

Mrs. Trevor seemed to count that threat conclusive, for she allowed
the matter to drop; and half-an-hour later, when the two ladies
dressed, Mittie too put on a picturesque hat and a pair of dainty kid
gloves.

"I can't think why you should object to driving alone with Mittie,
and letting me go to the station," Julia broke out at the last
moment.

"Because I prefer to have you with me, my dear. Driving alone makes
me nervous. Besides, it is quite useless your going. Nobody knows
what hour Harvey will really arrive."

Julia submitted, but she proved to be of little use in the
conversational line. All through the drive she seemed distraite,
as if her mind were elsewhere, and when Francesca wanted an opinion
on different qualities of black silk, Julia had none to give. Her one
desire was to get back early, lest Harvey should arrive and find
empty rooms. It would be so forlorn, so chilling, for the young
husband to have no welcome. Julia judged him by herself, knowing how
she would feel in his place, not perhaps allowing for his more
phlegmatic and even temperament. She loved him passionately, all the
fervent warmth of her nature, which for years had found no outlet,
flowing in the new-made channel. The short necessary absence, which
he counted so very short and so very necessary, was to her a long and
severe trial; and she reckoned the hours, almost the minutes, to the
time when he would be with her again, with something of a child's
impatience.

But Francesca would not be hurried. The choice of a few yards of silk
was, in her estimation, a serious and weighty business. She bestowed
upon it all her powers of thought and attention, utterly disregarding
Julia's stifled agony of impatience.

However, everything comes to an end in time, and so did Francesca's
shopping. Then they were driving in the direction of the hotel,
Julia leaning well forward, as if she could thus urge the horses
to the speed she desired. Her eyes gazed fixedly ahead, and
Francesca's observations were unheard.

"You are a lively companion, I must say," the latter remarked, as she
alighted.

Julia turned from her to hasten up the wide staircase. Francesca
paused to make inquiry, and before Julia reached the top of the first
flight Francesca's voice followed her. "He has not appeared yet!
I told you so."

Nor did he appear. Dinner-time arrived, but no Harvey, and no letter
from Harvey. Through the evening Julia watched in vain. She grew
heart-sick with disappointment—such a tiny disappointment Francesca
thought it, while Julia hardly knew how to face the prospect
of another long night and day without him. She was hurt and grieved
too that he had not written. He might surely have sent one line.

Till bed-time came Julia kept up pretty well, but when once alone
tears were allowed full swing. Nobody would be any the wiser,
so why not? The old desolate feeling, often hers in years gone by,
resumed its sway, and with it was a new pain. Did Harvey really care
for her as intensely as she loved him? If he did, could he stay away
one hour longer than was absolutely necessary in this their first
month of married life?

Julia knew practically nothing of the help from Above which may be
had through these fretting cares. Even theoretically she knew very
little. Religion for Francesca Trevor meant going to Church once
every Sunday in a fascinating costume, and occasionally adding her
name to some benevolent subscription-list headed by a marchioness
or an earl's daughter. And since Francesca had had the main part
of Julia's religious training in her hands for twelve years past,
it is not surprising if Julia's religious education were defective.

As a child indeed she had been somewhat better taught, not personally
by her parents, who were in India from her infancy until their death,
but by a certain lady who had charge of her till after her ninth
birthday. Francesca then, on the death of her parents one after the
other, came home—she had not been out more than a year—and the two
sisters went to live with an old uncle, Francesca setting herself
thenceforth to the deliberate undoing of Julia's early training.
She was resolved to prevent all "particularity of views," as she
would have described it, in her young sister. By which Francesca
simply meant that it mattered not at all to her what was or was not
truth in questions touching a life to come. All she desired was that
Julia should think nothing, believe nothing, do nothing which might
one day stand in the way of "a good marriage."

Francesca's efforts, followed out with a perseverance worthy of some
better cause, met with proportionate success. There were unhappily
no counter influences. The old uncle left everything in Francesca's
hands; and when Francesca married— "well" as she said, looking on the
matter purely from a money and society point of view—Julia lived with
her still. So by this time Julia really had no "particular views"
at all on the subject of religion. She did not know what she thought,
or what she ought to think.

When Harvey Dalrymple asked her to marry him, it never even occurred
to her to consider whether he were a good man, or what manner of
principles he held. She only knew that she loved him, that to know of
his love for her filled life with happiness, that she wanted nothing
and cared for nothing in addition.

Yet in her secret self she did want, did care. For no purely human
love can ever absolutely satisfy the heart which is made for higher
things, and in the brightest floods of mere earth-sunshine the
question must still arise—What lies beyond?

To that question, old as the human race, Julia had never even
attempted to find an answer. She put it aside, thrust it out of
sight. She lived solely in the present—a bright present of late,
but a cloud had come over the brightness already. She had little
expected on her wedding-day to have to sob herself to sleep alone
scarcely four weeks later.

Another long and dull morning followed; Julia would not go out.
Francesca ordered, argued, and coaxed in vain. Julia held to her
point. She must and would be in, she said, when Harvey should arrive.
Francesca at length went off with Mittie, not in the best of tempers,
and Julia kept solitary watch at the window.

Nobody then could have called her pretty. She looked dejected and
careworn, her cheeks pale, her eyes drooping and lustreless.
Francesca, coming in before lunch, shrugged her shoulders, and said,
"I declare you might be forty years old when you get into this
state."

"I can't help it. My head aches," Julia answered.

"No wonder, when you sit mumping indoors the morning. How can you be
so ridiculous? Very likely he will not arrive for a week!"

Julia shuddered at the idea. She would not eat any lunch, and how to
get through the afternoon was a difficult problem.



CHAPTER X.

SUDDEN PERIL.

"A LETTER for you, Aunt Julia."

Mittie danced into the room, holding out an envelope; then danced
back, holding it still. Julia started up.

"Mittie! give it to me," she cried.

"It's from Uncle Harvey! I know his writing. And it has got the
English postmark."

"Mittie! how dare you? Give it to me this instant!"

Julia made a forward step, and Mittie sprang to the open door, where
she stood as if meditating flight.

"Don't get cross, Aunt Julia, 'cause, if you're cross, I won't give
it you at all," the child said saucily, and she shook her great mane
of flaxen hair, looking out from the bush with soft black eyes.
"Mother always says people have got to keep good-tempered, whatever
anybody does. It isn't lady-like to be cross, you know."

"Francesca! make her give it to me!" gasped Julia, not daring
to advance, lest child and letter should vanish.

Mrs. Trevor laughed. "Come, Mittie, don't be a little plague,"
she said.

"I like being a little plague," asserted Mittie.

"I daresay you do; but just give the letter up now, without any fuss—
there's a good child."

"Then Aunt Julia isn't to be cross."

"Of course she won't. Do be quick, Mittie."

Mittie hesitated still, and Julia could endure the suspense
no longer. She made a rush forward, and caught the child's dress.
Mittie struggled furiously, broke loose, and fled to the window.
Before Julia could overtake her, she was out in the balcony, hanging
over the slight parapet.

"Aunt Julia, if you touch me, I'll drop the letter! I declare
I will."

But Julia's grasp was on the hand which held the letter. Mittie
fought fiercely, her lissom figure bending more and more outwards.
Suddenly she overbalanced herself. There was a scream, a clutch,
a sound of something tearing,—and Mittie was all but precipitated
on the pavement below. She had actually gone so far as to hang
suspended, with no support but Julia's arms. Even the letter  could
not be thought of in that moment. Julia held on with all her force,
in response to the child's convulsive clinging; but to lift her back
over the parapet unassisted was not possible, Julia's muscular powers
being less than one might have expected from her height and build.
Fortunately Francesca at hand. Mittie's shrill cry drew an answering
shriek from her as she ran forward, and after one moment of terrible
suspense the child was safely landed.

For three seconds no one spoke, only each looked at the deathly white
faces of the other two. It had been a frightfully near escape. Julia
seemed stunned, hardly able to stand, and Mrs. Trevor was panting.

Mittie broke the silence. "It's gone!" she said. "It's down in the
street. And I'm glad! Aunt Julia nearly killed me."

The excitable child flung herself on her mother in a tumult of sobs,
and Francesca too was in tears. Julia still said nothing. She did not
feel as if she could speak. The peril had been so very imminent, and
the results might have been so very terrible. Her throat felt rigid,
and black specks were dancing still before her eyes. But the letter—
Harvey's letter—that must not be lost! Julia went downstairs slowly,
her limbs shaking under her, and was met at the foot of the stairs
by a waiter.

"Mademoiselle had dropped something," he said, presenting her with a
muddy envelope. "It had been seen to fall from the window." Julia
thanked him, and returned to the sitting-room.

"So you have got it," Francesca said coldly, as she entered.
The child was clinging to her, and sobbing still. "I think you might
have been content to wait half-a-minute, instead of behaving like a
wild cat. Poor darling Mittie! It was awful."

Julia sat down, the letter pressed between her hands. "Mittie was
wrong," she said.

"I dare say! A little innocent fun! And you were right, of course,
as you always are."

"No. But—"

"Well, you may as well read your precious document now you have
got it. After all this fuss! Mittie, my sweet, don't cry any more.
You will make such a fright of yourself. Come, it's all right now.
We'll have a drive to-morrow, and you shall have a franc to spend
in chocolate."

This proved consoling, and Mittie's weeping ceased with astonishing
speed. She sat up and began to smile, casting curious glances at her
aunt, who had not yet opened the letter, but remained with fixed eyes
and cheeks white as paper.

"What is the matter with you?" Francesca asked at length, and Mittie
echoed the question in another form— "Aunt Julia, are you cross
still?"

Julia could not have answered the first question. She did not know
what was the matter with her. It was not crossness, but the moment's
horror had stunned her faculties. Suppose Mittie had gone over, and
suppose—suppose—only a little corpse had been brought up from the
street below! What would life have been after? and how must Francesca
have felt? and what would Harvey have thought—nay, what must he not
think now? Of course the child was wrong—wilful, pert, disagreeable;
but what of her own ungoverned excitement? Julia grew paler and
sadder as she thought. And it was all on account of this letter,
of her love for Harvey! She did not feel worthy to open and read it
yet, though her heart was craving for news.

"Do see what Harvey says, and don't sit staring at nothing in that
absurd way," Francesca at length said impatiently.

To Julia's surprise, Mittie spoke up in her defence. "Mother,
Aunt Julia isn't absurd. I expect she's only sorry."

Mittie quitted her mother, and went across to the chair in which
Julia sat.

"Are you sorry, Aunt Julia?" she asked. "You're not cross with me
now? I won't plague you again."

"Kiss me, Mittie," whispered Julia.

A cloud of flaxen hair descended round her in prompt reply; but the
very pressure of those little soft arms only brought up more vividly
than ever the terrible thought of what might have been the child's
condition if—only if—Julia's strength had not sufficed to hold
her up. Julia shuddered as she pressed her lips to the smooth cheek.

"Why, you are quite cold, I do declare; and I'm as hot as fire
with kicking you," Mittie asserted, with childish frankness and
exaggeration. "Is that why you're so pasty-coloured? If I had
a letter I wouldn't keep it shut all this time."

Julia became conscious that she could "keep it shut" no longer, and
her fingers broke open the closed envelope. As she read the sheet
within, she drew one or two long breaths of relief, and a glow rose
in her cheeks.

"He could not help it," she said.

"Couldn't help what? The delay?" asked Francesca. "Of course not.
What man ever could, if he wished to stay away longer?"

"Francesca, you don't understand. He has not stayed for pleasure.
He could not get away."

"Of course not," repeated Mrs. Trevor.

"His uncle is dead—suddenly."

"Julia!"

"Yes; early on Monday."

"Strange! What did he die of?"

"He was not well on Sunday. Then on Monday he woke quite early, and
said something about his head, about not wanting to be disturbed.
After that he never spoke again. Some sort of attack like apoplexy,
Harvey believes. Poor fellow!"

"Poor old Mr. Dalrymple?"

"Yes—no—I meant Harvey. He has had to go through all this, and I have
been thinking—"

Julia did not end the self-reproachful sentence.

"Why did he not write sooner?"

"He says he could not, and he thought a telegram would frighten me."

"He doesn't think you a greater goose than you are, my dear." Then,
after a break, "Was this what made you look so happy over your
letter? To be sure!—Westford will belong to your husband now."

"Francesca! how can you?"

"Well, if you had seen your own face—"

"I never thought of that or of any such thing. I was only glad
to know that he had good reason for staying away—not glad, of course,
for what has happened."

"What about Miss Rivers?"

"Harvey does not say much. Only that she bears up well, and that he
cannot possibly get away till after the funeral. Nothing can be
settled till then."

"And then—hélas!—we shall all have to be buried alive. Don't look
so dismayed; I only mean a figurative burial. What else can life
at Westford be?"

"I don't see—" Julia began, and stopped.

"You very soon will see, my dear. Depend upon it, that is to be
our future." Francesca sighed audibly again.

"Mother, shall we live in England?" asked Mittie.

"In a horribly triste country place, Mittie, with nothing but muddy
lanes and cows and sheep. I never did think I should come to that,
but beggars can't be choosers."

"Harvey always speaks of Westford as such a beautiful place."

"There's an ancestral glamour about it for him—not for me! I detest
ancestors almost as much as cows."

"I like lanes better than streets," announced Mittie, as if her
opinion were conclusive.

Julia did not care to enter into an argument. For her part she was
content to be anywhere in the world, so long as Harvey was there too.
Paris, Westford, Kamskatka, or Zululand, mattered little. A few
minutes later she slipped away to her own room, and re-read more than
once the hurriedly-written letter-one sentence especially.

"I am much afraid from what I hear that Hermione is left totally
unprovided for. I do not think she is aware of this herself, and it
is almost inexplicable with a man of such business habits as my
uncle; but it appears that he has constantly put off, waiting for my
return. I could wish now that I had gone back sooner. Regrets are
useless, however. We shall have of course to give Hermione a home,
though you need not at present mention this to Francesca, as it will
not be known until after the reading of the will. Hermione is a
pretty creature, and quite a saint, only perhaps a shade difficile
in some of her ways. She bears up splendidly, and one cannot but
admire her fortitude. I do not know how she and Francesca will suit,
still I have no doubt that we shall shake down together somehow.
I must stay here till after the funeral, as it is impossible to leave
Hermione alone. You will understand this, my dear Julia, and will,
I know, bear the disappointment bravely. After that we shall see what
to do."

Julia sat long by the window, thinking. Hermione occupied but a small
share of her attention. This sudden death in her husband's family
touched her keenly, coming so soon after the shock of little Mittie's
narrow escape. She could not yet turn from that recollection, could
not shake off the horror of it. A sense of insecurity crept over her,
of personal helplessness, of a wide surrounding abyss into which at
any moment she or her husband might drop away from the other. For
after all, life is not meant only for self-pleasing; and a butterfly
existence cannot satisfy; and human love may fail; and there is a
beyond to the present which may not be always ignored. Julia had a
glimpse of the far beyond in that quiet hour, even while the next
few days without Harvey seemed to her apprehension hopelessly long
to wade through.



CHAPTER XI.

WONDERFUL COMPOSURE.

HERMIONE did not break down, as all around expected, under the
fearfully sudden blow. When first they brought the news of what had
occurred, she grew indeed pale as ashes, but neither fainted nor
screamed.

"My grandfather taken ill, and I not told I how cruel! how wrong!"
she said reproachfully, and for some minutes she seemed to hold
at bay the dire truth that he was gone. When at length it gained
entrance, she went resolutely straight to his room, undeterred by all
remonstrances—and saw for herself.

Even then she bore up with a fortitude extraordinary in one so young.
She turned to no one for comfort, leant upon no one for support. Only
as she stood by the bed in tearless sorrow, she lifted to Harvey a
pair of anguished eyes and said, "If you had written—if you had done
differently—Harvey—your own conscience—" There she stopped, and he
had again the curious sense of being called to account by this mere
girl, so delicate in look, yet so inviolable in composure.

He made no attempt to defend himself. It was natural that at the
moment she should ascribe her grandfather's death, at least in a
measure, to the shock of Harvey's unexpected return. Had she known
how unwelcome to the old man had been the news of Harvey's marriage,
she would have counted the case against him yet stronger. Harvey
could not think of this without pain and self-reproach, although for
his comfort he already knew that during many weeks past both
Mr. Pennant and Mr. Fitzalan had noticed distinct signs of failing
in Mr. Dalrymple—so much so that Mr. Pennant had twice warned him
to be more careful of himself. But of this Hermione was ignorant, and
when, a little later, she was told, she did not seem to believe it.

"My grandfather was so well up to Saturday afternoon," she said
mournfully; and after all, no reasoning could explain away the actual
fact of a shock received. Mischief might have been brewing, but also
the brewing mischief might have been hastened.

Hermione had her own bitter additional grief, but for which she would
have blamed Harvey far more unreservedly. If she had followed
Mr. Fitzalan's advice, and kept her grandfather at home—as she might
have done, for he would always yield to his darling, if to no one
else—and if she had followed Harvey's suggestions of sending
for Mr. Pennant, who could say but that the fatal attack might have
been warded off? This thought pressed upon her with leaden heaviness,
yet she spoke of it to no one. She was very reserved, very reluctant
always to admit blame to herself as due. Harvey made no allusion
in her hearing to his rejected advice; such an allusion could now
have been only cruel. Mr. Fitzalan said nothing of the message he had
sent, which he supposed to have failed in its effect, for he would
not needlessly add to Hermione's distress.

People hear grief in very different ways, and Hermione's fashion
of grief-bearing was not to sink beneath it. Though so slight
in appearance, she was healthy and vigorous. Where another might have
been crushed, she seemed rather to be stimulated into an intense
restlessness. She could not read, could not work, could not talk
consecutively. No needless allusion to her loss ever passed her lips,
yet when necessary she spoke of Mr. Dalrymple with outward composure,
gave all needful orders, wrote countless letters, arranged
everything, left no duties unperformed.

From the first she had not been known to shed a tear, and the usually
smiling eyes had a dry look of fixed sadness; nevertheless she did
weep when alone in her own room, and she was not utterly overwhelmed.
She did not appear to be suffering in health, but only was always
on the move, unable to rest, passing hither and thither incessantly,
upstairs and downstairs, from one room to another, her soft step
never varying in its style.

Harvey wondered at her. He was full of pity for the poor girl,
and this sudden death of the kind old uncle whom he had not treated
rightly came to him as a sharp blow. He would have liked to draw
nearer to Hermione in her loneliness, to have shown brother-like
sympathy, and to have tried to comfort her. But Hermione eluded all
such attempts. She was his polite and cousinly hostess—nothing more.
Any further approach drove her instantly to "letters that must be
written," or "something that had to be done." Harvey acquiesced at
length, taking long walks about the neighbourhood, and seeing a good
deal of the Fitzalans, but holding very little intercourse with
Hermione. And so the slow days wore away until the funeral.

Marjory was by far the more broken down of the two girls. From the
moment of receiving the sad news she had scarcely left her couch.
She could not sit up or stand without a sickening whirl of everything
present. Parish work and other work had to wait. The girl seemed
crushed by her friend's loss.

The two had not met as yet. Hermione kept strictly to the house,
and Marjory could not go thither—the utmost she was able to
accomplish being to dress herself and creep down to the drawing-room.

Harvey commonly found her there when he came in, as he did on some
pretext or other once, if not twice, each day. Life at the Hall was
dull for him, and he seemed glad to get out of the sombre atmosphere;
and Marjory could detect a natural impatience to be with his young
wife again. "I should have liked to send for her here," he said once,
"but Hermione seems to disapprove; and I suppose, under the
circumstances, as they are strangers—"

He looked doubtfully at Mr. Fitzalan, and the answer was, "I think
you will be wise to wait." To Marjory's relief; Harvey acquiesced.

Friday came, and all the village followed the remains of the
village-benefactor to the grave. Hermione was there, notwithstanding
her cousin's opposition. Harvey thought that the ordeal must be too
great, and would fain have had her remain at the Hall. But he needed
not to have feared. Hermione was entirely composed throughout—
"stoical" one person said to himself, and that person was not Harvey,
for Harvey could not at all make up his mind about Hermione.

Marjory, who would fain have been present also, had to give it up.
She was only able to lie on her couch, weeping passionately for her
friend, while Hermione in deep black, with an angelic sweetness
on her fair face, stood forward alone as chief mourner, the observed
of all observers. Harvey was near, but she would not have
his support. Mr. Fitzalan's voice shook, and his hand trembled, while
Hermione never faltered. When they sang a hymn round the grave,
by Hermione's express desire, her clear tones took the lead, and her
blue eyes were uplifted as if verily able to see "behind the veil."

At the words, "I heard a voice from heaven—" brokenly uttered
by Mr. Fitzalan, who seemed quite unnerved and scarcely able
to struggle through the service, that look came again to her face.
Then a sob was heard, but it did not come from Hermione. A young man
stood behind her, stalwart in figure, his fine boyish face working
with strong emotion. Even in that sad hour Harvey had cast from time
to time interested glances at Harry Fitzalan, down in Westford
for the day. There were many who could tell him of Harry's devoted
affection for Mr. Dalrymple. It was an attachment which did the young
man honour.

Over at last! and the crowd broke slowly up. Harry would not go to
the Hall, as somebody asked him to do. He did not want to hear the
will read, so he hurried off alone to the Rectory. Marjory saw him
coming, to cast himself dejectedly into a chair in the darkest corner
of the drawing-room, and she checked her own tears to rise and meet
him. "Poor Harry must feel it so terribly," she knew. "After
Hermione, it was worse for him than for anybody."

"And Hermione!" she whispered, standing by his side, a few words
having passed. "And poor Hermione?"

The young man made a movement as if of impatience. He was very like
his father and sister in face, having the same irregular cast
of features, with loose brown hair and expressive eyes, but he was
half a head taller than Mr. Fitzalan, and strong in build, with a
sunburnt healthy look, therein a marked contrast to Marjory.

"Poor Hermione!" he repeated, with a touch of mockery. "You need not
trouble yourself, Marjory. It was all graceful attitudes and lovely
looks—nothing more."

Marjory's eyes filled. "O Harry! indeed you are mistaken."

"I wish I were. She didn't shed a tear—but tears are not becoming,
you know." Harry spoke somewhat doggedly, as if determined to stand
by his own opinion. "I never do understand female stoicism. It is
unnatural. And such a man as Mr. Dalrymple!" The words ended in a
groan.

"It is not stoicism—indeed it is not. It is only that she will not
give way before others."

"And now she will go home, do her duty to everybody, and be as
charming as if—" Harry broke into a sigh. "Well, we needn't discuss
the matter. It does no good—only worries you. We never shall think
alike about Hermione, I suppose. That six months abroad spoilt her—
and I see it, but you don't. I can't see why you need, either. After
all, she's a lovely creature, Marjie—nobody knows it better than
I do. Sometimes I wish I didn't know it quite so well. I should like
to get her out of my head altogether—and I can't. He counted her
perfect, dear old man! Only, one does look to see him mourned
differently—"

"Don't!" Marjory entreated.

"Poor little woman!" He kissed her brow in tender fashion. Harry was
a full year older than Marjory, though in looks four or five years
her junior. "Too bad of me, isn't it? I'll never accuse you of being
a Stoic, Marjory. And as for Hermione, perhaps you and I agree better
than we seem to do on the surface."

"You know very well that nothing would grieve you more than to see
her unhappy."

Harry made no response to this. He was so long considering what to
say that he ended by not saying anything at all. He knew that Marjory
spoke truth; yet quite as truly he could have added, "Except not to
see her unhappy when she ought to be so." But this would have pained
Marjory; and after all, how could he or any one say that Hermione
did not grieve? He could only be sure that she was not overcome
by her grief; and the question of being outwardly overcome depends,
not only upon kinds and degrees of sorrow, but upon the mode
of expression natural to each person in sorrow, upon the condition
of health, and upon the strength of will, where that will is bent
to the task of self-repression.

Marjory broke the long silence. "Did you speak to Harvey?"

"A few words. There was no need for more."

"He was kind—?"

"Why should he be anything else?" Harry spoke captiously.

"You have heard about his marriage!"

"Harvey Dalrymple's!" Harry spoke in a voice of amazement now, and he
stirred himself to an upright posture, as if startled out of his
depression.

"Yes."

"But I say, Marjie, I always thought—" Harry hesitated.
"Mr. Dalrymple's wish—"

This was the first thought which occurred to every one who knew
Mr. Dalrymple. The marvel was that he had never divulged it
to Hermione herself.

"I say!" reiterated Harry, in blank boyish astonishment.

"He was married abroad nearly a month ago. He had not written
beforehand, and he came home on that account to tell them here."

A curious revulsion of ideas was going on in Harry's mind,
a revulsion the nature of which was not distinct even to himself.
He sat staring at Marjory with those big grey eyes of his.
"Then—Hermione—" he uttered.

"Hermione only cared that Mr. Dalrymple was not told, because it was
a slight to him. Otherwise she would have been delighted. She told me
so herself."

"And she will live with them?"

"My father does not know what else she can do, and Harvey expects it.
But we want her to spend a quiet month with us first, to get over the
shock."

Harry sank into a dream, making no response. Marjory had her own
theory as to the subject of his dream.



CHAPTER XII.

TWENTY THOUSAND POUNDS.

HERMIONE was not in the library when the will was read. Somehow she
could not make up her mind to it.

As they drove home she grew paler, and the tearless eyes had
a strained look. If Harry had seen her then, the severity of his
judgment on her want of feeling would surely have relaxed. When
Harvey handed her out she gave a bewildered glance round as if
suddenly missing something. Did she only then begin in very truth
to realise her loss?

"Must I come too? Is it necessary?" she asked of Mr. Fitzalan in her
gentle voice, when a move was made to the library; and without
waiting for an answer she added, "I should like to go to my own room.
You can tell me afterwards anything that I ought to know." Before he
could protest she had glided away.

The library interview came to an end, and all, with the exception
of Hermione, knew the state of affairs. It seemed a strange state,
considering Mr. Dalrymple's great love for Hermione.

For everything came to Harvey—everything without exception, beyond
a few small legacies. The will had been made and signed twenty years
earlier, before the birth of Hermione, and while Harvey's father was
living. The bulk of Mr. Dalrymple's possessions had been then left
to his only brother's son, Henry Dalrymple, and to his heirs—Henry's
son, Harvey, being the next heir. Later codicils named the sum of one
hundred pounds for Harry Fitzalan, and various lesser legacies for
old friends and retainers, but nothing touched the original
arrangement. Hermione was not so much as mentioned.

"Inexplicable! extraordinary!" Harvey said more than once, when
talking afterwards in subdued tones with Mr. Fitzalan, and with the
lawyer, Mr. Selwyn; yet he was not without a secret clue to an
explanation.

"Mr. Dalrymple's fixed intention has been to make ample provision
for Miss Rivers," Mr. Selwyn said. "I happen to be well aware of this
fact. He spoke of the intention repeatedly, delaying only until your
return."

"Why should he have delayed?"

Mr. Selwyn bent his head slightly.

"It was a fancy of Mr. Dalrymple's—I can hardly give a more weighty
name to his reason—an old man's fancy. I have used influence to bring
about an immediate settlement, but without result. He always insisted
that there was no need for haste, that a few months more or less
could not signify; and he appeared to live in a constant expectation
of your coming. In a man of his good sense and good business habits,
this procrastination has been the more singular."

"And Hermione has nothing of her own?" Mr. Fitzalan observed.

"Not much. About one hundred and twenty pounds per annum, the amount
which was settled upon her mother. Unfortunately, the remainder
of Hermione Dalrymple's marriage portion lay at her husband's
discretion—and William Rivers made short work with that, as with
everything else that he possessed."

"Miss Dalrymple was averse to any larger settlement on herself,"
said Mr. Fitzalan.

"Yes—woman-like, trusting one who was not worthy of her trust.
Mr. Dalrymple yielded to her wishes—weakly, I have always thought.
Her child is the loser now, though not according to her wish
or intention."

"I only wish I had come home sooner," Harvey almost said, but somehow
he changed the sentence into— "I wish Hermione had been present.
How can one tell her?"

Mr. Fitzalan wondered silently— "Will not Harvey feel bound to carry
out his uncle's intentions?" The same thought was in Mr. Selwyn's
mind, less hopefully couched. The lawyer had perhaps seen even more
than the clergyman of the money-loving side of human nature,
and he knew from experience how gold-greed is apt to grow with
gold-possession. Moreover, both were well acquainted with the mental
indolence which made Harvey slow in arriving at any practical
decision.

Mr. Selwyn drew a letter from his pocket, and handed it to Harvey—
an opened envelope, addressed to himself. "I think you ought to see
this," he said. "I received it by the morning post on Monday."

The sheet within was written upon as follows, in a tremulous hand:—

"WESTFORD HALL, Saturday evening."

"DEAR MR. SELWYN,—Can you spend Monday night
here? I wish for some conversation with you.
My nephew has returned, and will remain
until Tuesday. He is lately married."

"I have resolved to settle the sum of
twenty thousand pounds upon my grandchild,
Hermione, at once."

"Pray telegraph an answer. I have acted
reprehensibly in delaying so long, and
I am impatient to have everything in train.—"

"Yours sincerely,"
"GILBERT DALRYMPLE."

Harvey read the letter twice, and gave it back without comment.

"I telegraphed, as you know, to say that I would come," observed Mr.
Selwyn. "The answering telegram from Miss Rivers, probably sent by
yourself in her name, acquainted me with what had unhappily
occurred."

"No; I heard nothing of any telegram," Harvey said, in a tone
of surprise.

"Then Miss Rivers acted independently. She is quite capable
of standing alone. A clever girl, with remarkable self-command."

"The sum named in that note would have been a heavy drag on the
estate," Harvey said gravely, as if to quash any hopes for Hermione
which the other might entertain.

"Possibly; but it was the amount which lay at Mr. Dalrymple's
own disposal—which it may be he has always destined for Miss Rivers—
unless—"

Mr. Selwyn left his sentence unfinished, and Harvey made
no inquiries.

It was of course needful that the true condition of affairs should be
revealed to Hermione, but nobody was anxious to undertake the task,
and Hermione was long in reappearing. Mr. Fitzalan had to depart,
on account of another engagement; and Mr. Selwyn was compelled
to catch a certain train to London from a similar reason. Therefore,
when Hermione did at length come downstairs, Harvey alone was
at hand.

He could not make up his mind to go into the question with her.
Harvey always shirked disagreeable duties if possible, and this duty
seemed to him especially disagreeable.

No doubt there lay lurking at the back of his disinclination
a distinct consciousness of what would be expected of him. He did not
suppose for a moment that Mr. Selwyn would publish the fact of the
twenty thousand pounds which might have been Hermione's. Probably no
living person except himself and Mr. Selwyn would know it. The letter
had not been shown even to Mr. Fitzalan, seated in the same room
with themselves. But everybody would be aware that Mr. Dalrymple
had not intended to leave his darling portionless.

It would have been an easy thing for Harvey to say to his cousin,
"Hermione, your grandfather meant to make ample provision for you,
and as he has been taken away before carrying out his intention,
I will do it instead."

The difficulty in the way of such a speech was that Harvey had not
made up his mind. He meant to do something, certainly, but the
question was—what?—how much?

He would consider the matter, would perhaps consult Julia. Apart from
the specified twenty thousand pounds, "ample provision" could mean
no paltry sum. And the estate was not one which would endure
unlimited demands. Harvey had been a degree disappointed at the
income which would be his. He had expected more.

Not that he was an avaricious man in the bold sense of the world.
He was simply a man who valued money for what it would buy, who liked
to get and to have whatever ministered to his comfort or pleased his
fancy, who never could be happy with less than the best of
everything. This of necessity means the command of considerable
wealth. Harvey would do any kindness to anybody, so long as it was
not too much trouble—Mr. Fitzalan had spoken thus of him truly—
but his own needs were always first supplied, and his own wishes
might never go unfulfilled. The word "self-denial" did not exist
in Harvey's vocabulary. He would now have Hermione on his hands,
besides his wife's relatives. These things had to be weighed in the
scale. While Mr. Dalrymple yet lived, he had of course the right
to settle what he chose of his own upon Hermione; but Harvey counted
twenty thousand pounds an unduly large amount, considering the heavy
expenses involved in the keeping up of Westford estate—an amount
so large that it really seemed as if the old man's mind must have
been a good deal weakened before he could arrive at so startling
a decision.

This was a comfortable view of the question for Harvey, helping him
to shake off the incubus of the private letter to Mr. Selwyn,
together with the feeling that in some measure he might be counted
morally bound to carry out his uncle's intention. Legally of course
he was free. The law could not touch him. But there is a moral side
to everything as well as a legal side, and the question of right and
wrong thrust itself obtrusively before Harvey's averted gaze,
insisting on being seen whether he would or no.

Well, and he meant to do his duty, of course—who could doubt it?—his
duty as a gentleman and a man of honour. Opinions might differ as to
what constituted his duty, as to what was for him "the right," and
there he must be permitted to decide for himself. Certainly he did
not intend to subtract twenty thousand pounds from the estate,
neither would Mr. Dalrymple have contemplated any such step but for
the weakness of old age. Harvey very soon regarded this as a settled
truth. But he meant to make "ample provision" for his young cousin.

If "ample provision" for Hermione should imply a call for the
curtailing of his own expenditure—

No, Harvey declined to face that question. It was easy to take refuge
in vagueness and delay. He would do all that duty and kindness
demanded of him. He had not the smallest intention of curtailing his
own expenditure for Hermione's sake or anybody's sake. But people
seldom say definitely, "I will do what is wrong." It is always
a roundabout road which leads to this goal. Harvey only told himself
that he would "think," and then he tried as much as possible to drive
thought away.



Hermione seemed scarcely to have begun to realise her own position,
or to look forward. It was not till late in the evening that she
remarked, as if casually, "Are you going back to Paris?"

"For a short time—a month or so," he said, seizing on the
opportunity. "You know that the Fitzalans have kindly asked you
to the Rectory until we can come."

"Mr. Fitzalan spoke of it," she said doubtfully. Her eyes were
a little heavy, as if from tear-shedding, but her manner was
composed.

"It will be best. You cannot stay here alone, and the break will be
a good thing."

She said slowly, "You are willing to come now—when he—and all those
years—"

"I don't know about being willing. I like the Continent best. But of
course we shall have to spend part of the year at Westford." Hermione
made no answer, and he felt himself impelled to add, "You know about
the entail."

"Yes."

Hermione stood up, as if to move away, and Harvey said, "I think
we ought to settle something. Julia will be expecting me."

"Why do you stay away from her?"

"I must know what day you can go to the Rectory before I can settle
anything. Of course your home will be with us now, Hermione."

She did not thank him, but said simply, "When you are at Westford."

"I hope—always. It would have been his wish for you."

Hermione went away, offering no response. "Impracticable girl!"
he muttered impatiently. She might almost have heard the words.
At the door she lingered to say, "Mr. Fitzalan asked me to go to the
Rectory to-morrow. You can arrange what you like about your own
plans."



CHAPTER XIII.

DEGREES OF GOODNESS.

"THERE'S something stopping at the hotel, Mittie—look!" cried Julia,
who was at the farther end of the room, while Mittie sat close to the
open window.

The child skipped out upon the balcony, and cried in shrill tones,
"It's Uncle Harvey!"

"Now, Julia, pray don't rush madly out, and—" Francesca's exhortation
came to an abrupt conclusion, fur Julia was gone.

"She wouldn't hear you, mother," commented Mittie, standing in the
open window, while a slight breeze lifted her clouds of flaxen hair
and swept them round her face. "Aunt Julia always does scamper when
Uncle Harvey comes. I think she's too big to scamper, ever so much.
But I like him, too—don't you? I like him better than Aunt Julia,
'cause he doesn't get cross."

"Mittie, there's a spot of grease on your sleeve," said Mrs. Trevor,
perhaps not anxious to discuss the respective merits of her sister
and brother-in-law.

"So there is," assented Mittie. "And here's another. I can't think
why spots of grease come. Don't you like Uncle Harvey too, mother?
He's got such a nicey sort of way of doing things, and he always
looks kind. He doesn't never frown, you know—does he?"

"Doesn't ever, you mean. Uncle Harvey will frown if you talk bad
grammar."

"No, he won't. He hasn't got that kind of pucker on his forehead
like Aunt Julia has got when she's cross. Most men have got big
puckers, and he hasn't. His forehead is as smooth as yours, mother."


"Well, Mittie! How do you do, Francesca?" Harvey's voice said, as he
came in, Julia clinging to his arm with an upturned face of brilliant
happiness, undeniably handsome at that moment. Mittie flung herself
on him with a little shriek of delight, but bounded off at his kiss,
exclaiming—

"Don't scrub! I hate moustaches!" and Francesca extended a hand
graciously, without troubling herself to rise.

"So you have had a dismal time of it on the whole," she said.

"Not worse than I have had!" murmured Julia.

"Foolish child!" he said softly.

"Only two days short of a fortnight. It has seemed endless."

"I could not come sooner. It was not my choice. There was no getting
away from Westford till late on Saturday, and a day in London
on business proved imperative. As I told you, I was not sure
of coming even to-day."

He threw himself into the corner of a couch, and Julia sat on a low
chair close by, watching him with eager eyes and clasped hands. She
could not understand his look. Was he bored, or vexed, or worried?
Mittie, too, was gazing in evident perplexity, for upon Harvey's
smooth brow lay two upright ruts not wont to be there.

Julia took refuge in the wifely question—

"Are you very tired?"

"No—yes; I believe I am. It has been a trying time altogether. Well,
Mittie, what mischief have you been after?"

He held out an arm, and she came near cautiously, with the proviso,
"Then I won't be scrubbed?"

"No; all right. I'll take care. How will you like a pretty young
cousin to live with?"

"She isn't my cousin," said Mittie. "What have you got those ugly
puckers for?" and her small fingers endeavoured to do away with the
dents.

Harvey laughed, and the puckers disappeared. "If Hermione is not your
cousin, you must adopt her."

"Is it settled that she lives with us?" asked Francesca.

"I believe so. We take it for granted."

"Is she really pretty?"

"Uncommonly."

"And—good?" Julia said, in a hesitating tone.

"Desperately."

"I shall be afraid of her. I don't like people of that sort. Must she
live with us? Has she nowhere to go?"

"No."

"But if she has plenty of money?" put in Francesca.

"She has not." A curious metallic sound came into Harvey's voice,
and the "puckers" were again apparent. Mittie endeavoured once more
to smooth them out, and he turned from her as if teased.

"Mittie, do be quiet," said Julia.

"I'm quiet. I don't want Uncle Harvey to be ugly," Mittie said, in an
injured tone.

"Oh, of course the estate was entailed," Francesca observed,
not noticing the by-play. "Still, one fancies the old gentleman would
have taken care of her future, if he were so devoted to her as you
have thought."

"He has not."

"And she is dependent on you?"

"At present—in a measure."

"How does she like that?"

"She does not seem to know it yet."

"You did not tell her?"

"That was not exactly my business."

"I should think the kindest plan would have been to speak out."

"Her friends can do so. Of course she is aware of the entail."

"Uncle Harvey is frowning most awfully," murmured Mittie.

"I should never have expected Mr. Dalrymple to leave her unprovided
for. It is not as if you had been quite the most attentive and
devoted of heirs," Francesca said, with a little laugh.

"Your experience of life has not taught you one thing, seemingly."

"What thing?"

"That people are always doing exactly what nobody would have expected
of them."

"Well, yes—sometimes; but still, in this case—"

"In this case you wouldn't have expected it? Just so. That only
points my doctrine. A 'well-drawn character' in a novel always does
what one expects of him, but individuals in real life are not so
obliging."

Julia's large black eyes were examining her husband's face.

"Have you been very much bothered? You don't look like yourself—"
and her hand stole to his coat-sleeve caressingly.

"Oh, by-the-bye, are we really to be buried alive in that country
place?" inquired Mrs. Trevor.

"I shall have to take Julia there in a month or six weeks. You must
please yourself about accompanying us."

A touch of irritation showed in the manner, and Francesca's colour
rose. She gave him a good look, and stood up, saying coldly, "That
was not precisely in your best style, when you know my circumstances.
Come, Mittie—it is about time to dress for table d'hôte."

Harvey evidently felt the rebuke. He went to open the door for her,
and said as she swept past, "I beg your pardon. I spoke carelessly."

"So I supposed!" —and she was gone, Mittie following in her rear.
Harvey came back to his seat, and there was an involuntary motion
of his fingers through his hair. Julia watched with eyes of soft
sympathy.

"Poor Francesca! I shall have to make my peace with her," he said,
half smiling.

"Oh, no need. I have no patience with Francesca. She takes everything
as a right, and shows airs when she ought to be only grateful.
And just now, too, when you are so worried! Harvey, have things gone
wrong? I can't quite make you out; you are not like yourself."

"I shall be all right now I am with you again."

The words were a great delight to Julia. She had the anxious clinging
temperament which craves for much outward show of affection, and
cannot trust without such evidence. Her cheek came down on his hand,
and she said, "Then I don't mind anything—even Hermione."

"You and Hermione will get on well enough."

"Only if she is so very good—desperately, you said."

"I used the word in jest, of course. You don't wish her to be very
bad, of course."

"No, no—but in that way—you know what I mean. One can't help being
rather afraid of people who talk a great deal very religiously—don't
you think so? Though, perhaps—" Julia hesitated— "I am not religious,
but sometimes I think I ought to be, and I wish I could be different.
If I were like you, it would not matter. You are always so true, so
exactly what you ought to be in everything; it seems as if you always
did right as a matter of course, not because it is right, but because
you can't help it. I can't even imagine your doing anything really
wrong. You have your little faults, I suppose, but I cannot see them.
I never see any one else quite like you. But I—oh, I am so
different."

"You are talking great nonsense, Julia."

"No, I am not; things are just as I say. You are always good, and I
am not, and I wish I were. It frightens me sometimes. I had such a
dreadful shock one day since you left. Francesca promised that she
and Mittie would not tell you, but I should not be happy unless you
knew. I could not endure the feeling of something being hidden.
Harvey, I nearly killed Mittie."

Harvey looked incredulous.

"Yes, it is true. It was an accident, of course—I mean it would have
been—but it was temper too." Julia told him in smothered tones of the
arrival of his letter, of the struggle in the balcony, and of
Mittie's narrow escape. "It seemed so awful," she said, "to think how
I should have felt if it had happened. And it might if Francesca had
not been so near. I never have much strength in my arms, and the
fright seemed almost to paralyse them, so that I felt Mittie sliding
away, and I could not keep her. I can't tell you what a horrible
moment that was. It comes back to me now, and turns me cold."

"No wonder; but after all, Mittie is a troublesome little puss."

"Yes; only that was no real excuse for me. Then, when I opened the
letter, I found the news about poor old Mr. Dalrymple. And I suppose
it was the two things coming so close together—I could not shake them
off. I felt for days after as if there was nothing to rest upon, and
no safety in looking forward. Do you know what it is to have such
feelings? But of course you don't, because you never do anything
so wrong. Perhaps the feelings will go now I have you again."

"I hope so. You have certainly been in a morbid state, my dear."

"So Francesca told me—not that she knew anything of what I am saying
now. She would only have laughed. And you don't think I ought
to become more religious?"

"You are enough so for me."

"But if I ought—"

"I shall leave you to settle that point for yourself. Only, pray
don't adopt Hermione as your model."

"Why? Don't you like her?"

"She is charming, as a girl. I do not admire her particular style
of goodness."

"No; but you will help me?"

Harvey laughed, perhaps to hide a sense of embarrassment.

"I am not a very religious person myself, Julia. No use to come
to me, I am afraid. Come, I really shall begin to suspect you of a
small craze on the subject. It is time that you should dress."

"Yes, I am forgetting; no, it will do in ten minutes—I never take
long."

"Better not be late; and I have my bag to unpack."

"I'll unpack it for you. Do let me—and then you can be quiet a little
longer. Is the key upstairs? Oh, thanks; I'll be very careful with
everything."

Harvey had remained a bachelor long enough to prefer unpacking for
himself, but a stronger sensation at that moment was a desire to cut
short the talk. He would not have had Julia know this for the world,
so he fell in with her proposal.

"I'll put everything out ready, so as to save you trouble," she said,
hastening away.

For ten minutes Harvey was alone, and during that short interval
he came to a weighty decision, reversing a former intention. He would
not speak to Julia about the letter from Mr. Dalrymple to Mr. Selwyn,
or about the "ample provision" which had to be made for Hermione
Rivers. At least—not yet. Harvey's determinations were apt to be
somewhat vague. He did not resolve never to speak, but only not to
speak "at present." After all, Julia was a mere girl, unversed in
business affairs. The matter rested with himself; he would wait and
consider. There was space enough ahead for action—why do things in a
hurry?

Perhaps Julia's loving belief in her husband's "goodness," had to do
with this decision. If she knew all, she might not feel quite so
convinced of his excellence. He had no wish, naturally, to lower
himself in her eyes. Everybody likes to be esteemed and admired—or,
as we are apt to express it, "to be appreciated."

No, he would keep the matter quiet for a while, till he should
"see his way."

Somehow Marjory's face came up, pale and reproachful, and her voice
seemed to mingle sadly with the busy sounds of the gay street below,
quoting the words she had quoted before:—

"But now 'tis little joy
To know I'm farther off from heaven
Than when I was a boy."

"Stuff! nonsense!" exclaimed Harvey, almost aloud. "I declare I am
as bad as Julia—positively morbid. As if that had anything to do with
the question. One would think Marjory had bewitched me! I have to
consider my duty to the estate. If my poor old uncle's idea had been
carried out, the property must have been completely wrecked—hampered
for years at all events. Hermione shall have what is right, but I
must have time for consideration. By-and-by I shall know better what
really lies at my command."



CHAPTER XIV.

EXPECTED.

SEVERAL weeks had glided by when, one day towards the middle of
August, Harvey Dalrymple and his party were to arrive at the Hall.

He had not even yet plainly told Hermione that the widow and her
child would be permanent members of his household. There was "time
enough," and Harvey always deferred the unpleasant till to-morrow.
So Hermione only knew that another bedroom had to be prepared.

"A strange time to come—before Harvey and Julia are even settled in,"
she said, sighing. "Things would have been bad enough without that."

Hermione had slept at the Rectory hitherto, but this night she would
occupy her old quarters. Better so; the plunge had to be made, and
the sooner was the wiser.

These past weeks had gone very peacefully, and to Hermione not
unhappily. The sorrow had been a gentle sorrow, and she was
surrounded by kindness. She was so young, and so attractive in her
deep mourning, that few could look upon her unmoved. Wherever she
went she met glances and words of pity or sympathy, alike from rich
and poor. Mr. Fitzalan had never been more fatherly and kind than now
in her time of severe loss; Marjory was nothing less than her abject
slave; and Harry, returning home for his long vacation, forgot his
own past strictures, to place himself, metaphorically speaking,
at her feet. Why not? He was no longer bound, in loyalty to Mr.
Dalrymple's desire, to hold aloof. Hermione could never belong
to Harvey.

There could be no doubt that Hermione was soothed and comforted,
that she liked this kind of thing. To find herself a centre of
thought and care, of love and adulation, did not beget a conceited
mood or manner, but had a gently lulling effect. She accepted all the
petting, the care, the admiration, with a soft humility of demeanour
which deceived almost everybody, herself certainly included.
"So simple and unconscious," was the general verdict. Perhaps nobody
in the place saw deeper except Mr. Fitzalan; for, if Harry could have
seen, Harry would not see. He put on tinted glasses, and gave himself
blindly up to the infatuation of her sweet presence. And Mr. Fitzalan
said nothing. He knew that no words of his could make Hermione see
herself as she was, and he knew that Hermione's time of trial was yet
to come.

She kept well in health, able to sleep, eat, and walk as usual. She
had taken to looking gently pensive and depressed, but this was only
correct. Perhaps, if it did not sound cruel, one might even suggest
that she looked so because it was correct—because she found that it
was expected of her. And the pensive sweetness was very becoming.
But Harry, poor fellow, was past seeing that now, and Hermione
herself was unaware that she looked aught which she did not genuinely
feel.

There was cause enough, undoubtedly, for a saddened face. Nobody
would have been surprised at any amount of sorrow on her part. If she
had been utterly crushed, it would have been considered only
reasonable. But then she was not crushed at all. She was as much
interested as ever in people and things, and in surrounding life,
and as willing to be "appreciated" by everybody with whom she came
in contact. People in overwhelming grief do not care much about
appreciation, at least for the time.

There had been no talk as to business. Hermione asked no questions,
and the subject had been carefully avoided by the Fitzalans.
Mr. Fitzalan supposed that she had learnt from Harvey the true state
of affairs, and while inclined to wonder at her silence, he respected
it. He was not at all disposed to enter into any discussion about the
will, or about what Harvey's duty might be.

But, in truth, Hermione knew little as to the state of affairs. She
was vaguely aware that the estate had been left to Harvey, and that
he possessed a right to live at the Hall. It never so much as
occurred to her that she had a right to live there no longer, except
with his permission. She was very young—only nineteen years old—and
accustomed to have whatever she liked for the asking. All her life
had been spent at Westford, except an occasional month at the sea
side, and one long bout of six months on the continent with her
grandfather; which six months had transformed her from a complete
child to a complete young woman. She went away spoilt, passionate,
impulsive, yet pretty and most lovable. She came back lovely,
composed, self-restrained, confident, and charming.

As for money matters, Mrs. Milton, the housekeeper, managed all
household expenses, with merely a nominal reference to Hermione. Up to
seventeen years old Hermione had been in the hands a governess—and a
troublesome handful that poor governess found her. Since seventeen
she had been her own mistress, and had been permitted to buy whatever
she pleased, Mr. Dalrymple paying her bills and keeping her purse
filled. She was about as well acquainted with the practical value
of money as most children of eight or ten. When Harvey was at Westford
Hall, he would occupy the same position that Mr. Dalrymple had
occupied; and if there were bills to pay, no doubt Harvey would pay
them. Hermione could dismiss the question thus easily. She was a
clever girl, well-read, and with opinions on abstract subjects
at least as decided as opinions are wont to be at the age of nineteen,
but in regard to money matters she was complacently ignorant.

Mr. Fitzalan remarked one day that it was "kind" of Harvey to give
her a home. Hermione opened surprised eyes. "Why?" she asked, and
Mr. Fitzalan spoke of something else. Though he did not know of the
letter to Mr. Selwyn, he knew enough of Mr. Dalrymple's intentions
to count Harvey morally though not legally bound to provide for
Hermione; he knew quite enough, therefore, to deter him from
discussing things with Hermione.

Morally, but not legally! So it was the old question again of right
and wrong—of what a man would like to do versus what a man ought
to do! But money is very blinding to the moral eyesight where legal
freedom exists. Mr. Fitzalan wondered often how Harvey would view
his own position.



Marjory had afternoon tea at the Hall with Hermione, the day on which
the travellers were expected. Hermione did not seem nervous or timid,
as Marjory would have been in her place—as, indeed, Marjory was now.
She only looked pensive. Milton had arranged abundance of flowers
in the drawing-room, and Hermione altered the arrangement here and
there, with some critical remarks. Then she went for a walk on the
terrace with Marjory, to while away the time.

"I suppose we shall hear the bells ringing soon?" she said.

"If only that need not have been!" sighed Marjory. "Harry has gone
for a long walk to get out of the way. He said he could not stand it."

"Poor Harry!" Hermione observed, in her elder-sisterly tone. "He was
always so fond of my dear grandfather."

"Do you think Harvey will keep up things as he did?" faltered Marjory.

"I hope so, indeed. I shall use all my influence, Marjory, and if
Harvey did not, I should think it right to speak to him plainly."

Hermione, the girl of nineteen, might speak, but would Harvey, the man
past thirty, listen? Marjory, with all her devotion to Hermione, was
conscious of something a little out of joint here, of something not
quite as it should be. For, after all, everybody is not called upon to
set everybody to rights. There are limits to our duties.

To suggest that Hermione was labouring under a mistake lay beyond the
reach of Marjory's capabilities. She said only, "You like Harvey
really, do you not? in himself, I mean."

Hermione wore a look of thought. "Yes," she said; "I like him
certainly—as my cousin. That does not always mean much, does it?
A cousin may be a great deal to one or nothing at all. He wishes to be
a brother to me, and I have no objection, so far as it is possible,
though he did not behave as he should to my grandfather. The past
cannot be undone, and he was willing to pass it over. I believe it is
wisest to drop the thought of the past, and to begin afresh. If Julia
will let me, I shall be a sister to her. Only I cannot help wishing
that this Mrs. Trevor had kept away just now. Hark, the bells are
beginning."

Marjory was in tears. Hermione slipped a hand through her arm.

"Dear Marjory, I know you feel so much for me," she said.

Marjory could not have told whether she felt most keenly for Hermione
or for herself at that moment. She was one to suffer keenly from every
"new departure" in life.

"I must go, Hermione. They will be here directly."

"Not yet. Cannot you stay with me to receive them?"

"My father thought it best not. I have no right, and it might seem
like intrusion."

"Intrusion? If I ask you to stay?"

Yes, even if Hermione asked it, for Hermione was no longer mistress.
But Marjory could not suggest this. She did not know what to say.
Her own instinct was strongly opposed to the step, yet she could not
bear to leave Hermione alone at such a trying moment. They took one
more turn together, and when at the farther end of the terrace a sound
of wheels stopping at the front door was heard.

"They have come!" exclaimed Marjory, flushing.

Hermione paused. "Impossible," she said. "It is some caller. Slade
will say that I am engaged."

"But everybody knows—nobody would come to-day. Had I not better
go home?"

Hermione hesitated, sure that her own conjecture would prove to be
in the right. The train was one proverbially behind time, and Hermione
had not looked for the travellers to arrive until a full quarter of an
hour later. Besides, the bells had only just begun to ring.

For once, however, the late train was early; and the bell-ringers,
as well as Hermione, were taken by surprise.



CHAPTER XV.

THINGS DIFFERENT.

THE conservatory door was flung open, and a child came flying along
the terrace, her lissom figure bending forward, her flaxen hair
streaming, cloud-like, behind.

"Mittie, Mittie! Come back, you naughty child!" sounded from within
doors, in faint shrill tones.

Mittie paid no regard to the sound. She rushed on, till within three
yards of Hermione and Marjory. There she stopped abruptly.

"Are you the pretty cousin?" she demanded, fixing her black eyes
fearlessly on Hermione, whom she seemed to select at a glance with a
precocious child's penetration. "Uncle Harvey says I have got to adopt
you, because you're not my cousin really, you know. But I think—" and
the black eyes roved to and fro between the two faces— "I think I'd
rather adopt the other!"

The words sounded comical from those rosy lips. Hermione was gravely
silent, wearing a checked, even a displeased look, as if the infantine
frankness were annoying. Marjory's heart went out towards the small
engaging creature, so daintily delicate in figure and dress.

"Don't you think you might adopt both of us?" she asked adroitly.
"We are very much like sisters. No, I am not Hermione—this is
Hermione—I am only Marjory Fitzalan. And you are Mrs. Trevor's little
girl?"

"I'm Mittie Trevor, of course." That seemed a self-evident fact to the
eight-years-old maiden. "And Mrs. Trevor is my mother, and we've come
to live here—but I wish it was you that had got to be my cousin. What
makes you call yourself 'only' Marjory? I like Marjory for a name, and
you are not a poor person."

Marjory could not resist stooping to give the kiss which Hermione
ought to have given.

"Not a rich one, at all events," she said.

"Oh, but you know what I mean? I don't mean that, of course—mother
isn't rich either, because she's lost all her money, and that's why
we've come to live here; but she isn't a poor person, of course, don't
you understand? What makes you look as if you had been crying?
Grown-up people oughtn't to cry about nothing, mother says, because it
makes them ugly—only you are not ugly. I mean to tell Uncle Harvey.
I like you ever so much the best. The other looks like Aunt Julia when
Aunt Julia is cross."

"Hush, you must not speak so," Marjory said hastily. But Hermione did
not seem to hear the utterances. She was standing as if lost in
thought.

"Impossible!" she said aloud. "He could never intend such a thing
without consulting me."

"Don't you think you ought to go? I had better say good-bye,"
suggested Marjory.

"If you must. Yes, I have to go in; but—" Hermione faltered, looking
at the child. Should she question Mittie? No, she could not stoop to
that. Harvey, and Harvey alone, must answer for himself.

"Come to live here!" Those four words rang in Hermione's ears as she
turned towards the house, forgetting even to respond to Marjory's
good-bye. Mittie stayed behind, to pursue her new acquaintance through
the garden, and Hermione entered the conservatory alone.

At the drawing-room door she paused, partly to observe, partly to
rally her powers of self-command. For all in a moment it rushed over
her how great a change had come in her life.

A tall lady-like girl, handsomely dressed, stood in the bow-window,
studying the view. Hand-bags and small packages lay about the room,
and Slade with his usual cautious air was carrying something away,
it did not matter what. Hermione caught the tone of his assenting
"Yes, sir," in mild response to an evident order from Harvey,
who stood near the fireplace, with the air of one taking possession,
albeit in his usual insouciant and gentlemanly style. A smaller and
plumper individual than Julia—somehow Hermione knew at once which was
Julia, though the widow's attire was by no means strongly marked as
such—had thrown herself into Hermione's own especial easy-chair, and
was remarking in distinct tones—

"Rather comical, isn't it, to desert the premises, and give nobody
a welcome? But I suppose one may expect a certain rusticity of manners
here. My dear Julia, I don't know what your sensations may be, but I
am dying for a cup of tea. Do pray ring and order it. That man is a
very embodiment of slowness; he will be an hour at least carrying
up the tray. Yes, pray ring, Harvey; thanks. And this is the
drawing-room! Not a badly-shaped room on the whole,—quite capable
of being made pretty. Of course there is no sort of arrangement now.
Everything seems to have been plumped down once for all exactly where
it stands, and left there for twenty years. Not a vase that hasn't its
exact match on the other side—and the way those curtains are draped
is antediluvian, to say the least. I'm not sure that it isn't
pre-Adamite. As for that row of chairs, with their backs against the
wall, they are enough to give one the nightmare. Nous allons changer
tout cela, I suppose, and the sooner the better."

"Francesca!" her brother-in-law uttered, in a warning undertone.
He had caught sight of Hermione standing in the conservatory doorway,
and he went forward to meet her, not without some secret
embarrassment, but with a kind brotherliness of demeanour. For he
wanted very much to make Hermione happy. He had set his heart on doing
all that he possibly could to repay her for what she was losing, short
of adequate money-repayment. He did not of course allow that she was
a wronged individual, or that she had any actual claim upon him.
He had reasoned himself by this time into looking upon the £20,000
settlement as an absolutely preposterous notion. It seemed to him
a doubtful matter whether the estate would stand the strain of losing
even half of that sum; and after all he was, legally, free to do or
not to do exactly as he chose. Still there was a distinct wish
to "make up" to Hermione for something—he did not define what!

Hermione's manner could not be called sisterly, and when she allowed
him to lead her to his wife there was no warmth in her welcome.
Mrs. Trevor's words, involuntarily overheard, did not heat her into
outward anger or freeze her into rigidity; and she came forward
gracefully as usual, with only a slight deepening of colour; but there
was a calm dignity, a displeased distance, in her bearing, curious
in one so young.

Julia did not know what to make of it. Her face, which had lighted up,
fell quickly, and she scanned Hermione inquiringly as their hands met.
Mrs. Trevor's lips wore an odd expression, like one bracing herself
for a conflict. She had expected a pretty young girl, whom she might
patronise agreeably out of the plenitude of her worldly experience;
and this stately young creature seemed hardly susceptible to
patronage. Hermione had often looked sweeter, sunnier, more lovable
than at this moment, but perhaps seldom more beautiful. And Mrs.
Trevor did not like beautiful women. She objected to being outshone.

Remarks trickled slowly from one to another, Hermione speaking just
so much as was necessary, not more. She seated herself on the sofa,
as if receiving guests, and she made polite conversation in a chilled
and chilling manner which Mrs. Trevor thoroughly understood. "That
girl has been spoilt, and needs putting in her right place," the widow
thought. "Julia will never succeed; she lets things go too easily.
I shall have to take her in hand myself."

Queries as to the journey were answered, and Hermione explained
her own absence at the moment of arrival, apologising for it in quiet
tones. She had not expected their train to be so early, she said. Then
Mittie's name came up, with wonderings as to what could have become
of her, in the midst of which Mittie herself came flying through the
conservatory, to deposit her little person in the big armchair which
had always been Mr. Dalrymple's.

Harvey saw and understood Hermione's look. "Come here, you witch,"
he said; "I want to know what you have been about." But Mittie
declined to be dislodged.

"No; I like this best," she said. "You always kiss me, and scrub so
with your moustache. I mean to sit here. I've been out in the garden,
and it's very pretty. It's a nice place to live in, I think. And
there's a person that I like very much. Her name is 'only Marjory,'
she says. That does sound so funny, but I love her. She's just as pale
as can be, and her eyes look so big and tired, and she's not like
nobody else I ever saw. I like her ever so much better than cousin
Hermione."

"That child wants bringing into order, Francesca," Harvey said, in a
displeased tone.

"She's too much for me. Hold your tongue, Mittie, and don't be rude,
or I shall send you to bed."

Mittie did not hold her tongue. She responded simply, "Then I shall
cry, mother!" and examined Hermione in a prolonged gaze.

The entrance of tea effected a diversion. Slade hesitated a moment
where to place the basket-table, glancing from his former to his
present mistress; but Julia paid no attention, and Hermione, as a
matter of course, signed him to the usual place. Mrs. Trevor noticed
this, with a strengthening of her previous determination. She noted,
too, the calm air of possessorship with which Hermione dispensed tea
and offered cake. Unmistakably the young girl was, in her own eyes,
hostess still. The time had scarcely come yet, however, for speech,
and nothing would have been said but for the presence of that
embarrassing child. Mittie munched and considered, curled up in the
big armchair, with her tumbled mass of flaxen hair and her soft
wide-open eyes.

"Does everything here belong to cousin Hermione? I thought Aunt Julia
was to be the mistress. Mother said so."

"Mittie, you are a very rude impertinent little girl! If you don't
hold your tongue, you shall leave the room," said Harvey, with
sufficient sharpness.

"I know mother said so," murmured Mittie, very nearly in tears, for a
real rebuke from her uncle was rare, and she loved him dearly enough
to mind it.

No further notice was taken, and Mittie subsided into silence.
Hermione scarcely seemed to have heard the childish utterance, yet it
had stung severely. Her hand trembled, causing one cup to clash
against another, and an unwonted flush became fixed in either cheek.
Once or twice, when addressed by Harvey, she appeared lost in thought.

For Mittie had done at last what all these weeks since her
grandfather's death had failed to do. Hermione's eyes were opened
to see in a flash, and that no welcome flash, her new position in the
household.

Not for worlds would she have had those around guess what she was
feeling. She kept her seat and her quiet manner, doing what had to be
done, only a little flushed and grave and silent. Harvey knew that the
unconscious arrow had sped, and he was very uneasy in his knowledge;
but the two ladies, not being aware of her usual looks and ways,
were not struck with the variation. They only thought her cold and
proud—pretty in no common degree, but not attractive.

"Can you manage without me for a little while? I have something that
must be done," Hermione said, rising when tea was over.

"Pray don't stay on our account," Mrs. Trevor said at once.

Harvey followed Hermione into the hall, with intent to apologise
for Mittie's rudeness, but she was too quick for him. He only saw her
out of reach, passing up the broad staircase.

Once within her own door, safe from observation, a change swept over
Hermione. The fair face grew white and wild, with a look of
inexpressible loneliness. She stood in the centre, her eyes cast down,
her arms drooping listlessly, her lips moving with scarcely articulate
utterances.

"How can I bear it? How shall I be able? Oh, grandfather—oh,
grandfather—so utterly alone! Must I stay? It is my home, but so
different now! Everything altered! I cannot understand; but I must ask
the Fitzalans—not Harvey. Those people to live here, and I not even
told! Oh, it was cruel of Harvey—cruel of everybody. And Julia the
mistress! Yes, I suppose so; but I did not see before what it meant.
O God—oh, God, must I bear it?"

Then there came a sharp struggle with a very storm of sobs, which
seemed almost as if they must rend the slight figure. Hermione writhed
and bent beneath the agony, yet pride was strong, and she would not
yield. Mrs. Trevor and Julia might not, should not, see that she had
been weeping; and she did not weep. Not a tear was allowed to force
its way from her eyes. The strife was soon over. Strange to say,
Hermione did not pray, as one might have expected. She spoke half
aloud, to herself, as it were, with but that one brief appeal which
could hardly be termed prayer; and then, having conquered the bout
of strong emotion, she stood up, going to the looking-glass.

"No, they will not know," she murmured, examining the face reflected
there. She even smiled gently to herself. "Yes, that will do. I shall
not be overcome now."

Five minutes later she was passing alone through the garden on her way
to the Rectory.



CHAPTER XVI.

AN INTERVIEW.

"MISS RIVERS wishes to see you, sir."

"Miss Rivers!" The Rector was rather astonished, knowing how short
a time had passed since the arrival of the travellers. "A messenger
from Miss Rivers, do you mean?"

"No, sir; Miss Rivers is here, her very own self," the girl answered
with emphasis, as if appreciating his surprise. "And Miss Marjory
is out with Mr. Harry; but Miss Rivers says it don't matter, because
she don't want to see nobody except you, sir."

"Show Miss Rivers in here."

The maid vanished, and with a slight sigh Mr. Fitzalan put aside his
sermon papers, wondering whether he would find himself so well in the
mood for work after a delay. Mr. Fitzalan was an extempore preacher,
in the sense of not reading from a written sermon, but his subject
was always well worked out beforehand upon paper.

"May I come in? You are not too busy?" asked Hermione at the door.

"Not at all." Mr. Fitzalan would not even suggest haste, whereby the
interview might be shortened. Most people would have counted that
Hermione looked exactly the same as usual, as she glided gently in,
taking a proffered chair, and letting her black draperies fall
gracefully. But Mr. Fitzalan saw a difference.

"Harvey and his wife come yet?" he asked.

"Yes; and the Trevors. Mr. Fitzalan, did you know about those people—
Mrs. Trevor and her child?"

"Marjory said something."

"Marjory only knows what I told her—that they were to be here for a
visit. I thought it bad taste to ask them just now, but I had no idea
of anything further—no idea of their always living with us."

"Is that to be the plan? Well, the Hall is large enough," Mr. Fitzalan
said cautiously.

"Harvey has told me nothing. But from what the child says—"

Hermione's voice was not so calm as usual, not by any means so calm
as she wished. It trembled, and a bright flush rose anew in her
cheeks, filling the eyes with a troubled light.

"I remember being told that Mrs. Trevor had lost her money. It is a
generous act on the part of Harvey to give her a home. He has the
right if he chooses."

"Without consulting me!"

Mr. Fitzalan knew that the time had at last come for speaking out.
He answered steadily, "In strictness, yes, without consulting any one
except his wife."

"Julia! I don't suppose Julia cares. Mrs. Trevor is her sister.
But I!"

The emphasis on the pronoun was unmistakable.

"It might have been a matter of kindness to tell you his intentions
beforehand, but perhaps he thought it kinder not to worry you. It is
not a matter of right, my dear child. I think you have to resolve
to face that fact. Harvey is master here now. The place belongs
to him."

"And I! I have nothing to do with anything!"

"Not more than your cousins choose."

"No rights of my own?"

"With respect to the estate—none."

For a full minute the clock ticked busily, with no accompaniment
of human voices. Mr. Fitzalan sat with his eyes bent downward. He knew
a struggle to be going on opposite, and he knew that Hermione would
shrink from observation while it lasted. She would speak as soon as
she was able. Till then he waited.

"Must I live there?" came at length.

"I think so; for the present. Harvey offers you a home, and no other
home has presented itself. I believe it would have been your
grandfather's wish."

"Yes—he—but I don't understand. I don't think I know how things really
are. I did not hear the will read. He would wish me to be happy,"
Hermione said in short sentences, broken by agitation. "If I would
rather live somewhere else, I suppose I could. I must have enough
of my own. Could you tell me about that?"

"There is your mother's marriage settlement of one hundred and twenty
pounds a year."

"And besides—"

"Nothing more."

"Nothing at all. But from my grandfather—"

"No." Mr. Fitzalan spoke feelingly. "He fully meant to make other
arrangements, but unfortunately he put off too long. His will was made
before your birth, and your name has never been inserted."

Another silence followed, longer than the last.

"It seems so strange, so extraordinary," she broke out at length,
in a voice almost resentful. "I could not have thought it. He did love
me; but to leave me dependent on Harvey and Julia—"

"He only knew of Harvey's marriage at the last."

"Yes—but Harvey alone—how could he leave me so?"

Tears of wounded feeling could no longer be kept back, strive as
Hermione might. She stood up and went to the bookcase, remaining there
with her back turned. Mr. Fitzalan would speak no hasty words.
He feared to make mischief between the cousins.

"And there was nothing for me, nothing at all?" she repeated, coming
back to her seat. "He forgot no one else—only me!"

"He did not forget. Don't let yourself wrong him, even in thought.
He had spoken to Mr. Selwyn sometimes of his intention to provide for
you more fully, and the day before his death he wrote summoning
Mr. Selwyn from London. But—too late."

"He ought not to have put off. It was wrong," Hermione said
in distinct accents. Then, with a change of tone, "Does Harvey know
this?"

"Yes. He offers you a home; and I think that at present your duty
is to accept his offer."

Hermione's face quivered. "I don't know how to bear it all," she said.
"Anything else would be easier."

"Anything, except what is given you to bear?"

"You don't know, you don't understand. Nobody outside can guess what
it will be. I don't expect to have no trials. One must have them,
of course. But to live on there in the dear old home as a mere
dependent—as nobody—after what has been!" She broke into her own words
with a start, "I am saying this only to you—only for yourself. Others
must not know how I mind it, not even Marjory. I can't endure to be
pitied. But oh, it is hard—very very hard!" and a sob seemed wrenched
from her.

"Poor child!" Mr. Fitzalan said, despite her repudiation of pity.
"My dear, it is of no use for me to tell you that things will not be
so bad as you expect. Lower comfort is no good at such times. Better
take the pain and the help both together straight from God Himself."

She shook her head mutely, placing both hands over her face.

"Think," he went on, "how often you have told others to trust in His
love, not to doubt Him in sorrowful hours. Now is the time for you
to put your own words into practice."

"I don't think anybody ever had anything like this to bear!"

He did not smile, as he might have done. He knew that she knew little
of life yet, and that her loss was very great in her own eyes.

"There is a poor old woman down in the village, whom you and I both
know well. She is lonely, poverty-stricken, forsaken by her only son,
a great sufferer in body. Three days ago I went to visit her, and I
found her very full of a call she had just had. Shall I tell you what
she said?" Hermione made no sign. "I think you can guess who had
called. She said, 'Sir, Miss Rivers has been, and she's done my poor
old heart good. For she do speak like an angel to me, sir, a-telling
me how I'm not to be afeared, for if so be I'm "yielded up" to the
Lord, and has given up my will to Him, why, I needn't never mind
nothing, but just rest upon Him, and take whatever He sends, and be
joyful. And I'll do it too, sir, so please He'll help me.'"

Mr. Fitzalan waited a few seconds.

"Oh, I don't know—it all seems so unreal."

The words dropped from Hermione as if involuntarily. She stopped when
about to say more, abashed by her own utterance.

"What seems unreal?" He had no reply, and he went on, "It was absolute
truth that you spoke to the poor old woman. But, my child, was it
truth for yourself, or was it only quoted from the knowledge
of others?"

This question came searchingly, and Hermione made no attempt to answer
it. She pressed her hands closer over her face.

"If the last—then perhaps a sharp test has been sent, that you may see
how things really are."



Half-an-hour later Marjory came to her father's study, with the
exclamation— "Has Hermione really been here?"

"Yes."

"Sutton told us, and Harry has rushed off, in hopes of overtaking her
before she reaches home."

"Harry might have spared himself the exertion."

"Then you don't think he will succeed?"

"Hermione left me some time ago, and she is a quick walker."

"If only we had guessed that she might come! Father, does she
seem happy?"

"What did you think when you left her?"

"I don't know—I thought her very worried. That child Mittie Trevor
talked as if she and her mother were to live at the Hall. She is a
dear child, I should fancy, but Hermione did not take to her."

"And Marjory did?"

"I can't resist children. She is very small, with a great mane of fair
hair, and such a pair of winning black eyes. When she followed me
through the garden, and threw her little arms round me, begging for
kisses, I found her irresistible. Hermione is not like me in that.
She only cares for children in a Sunday-school."

"Seated in neat rows, to be talked to," suggested the Rector, with a
twinkle in the corner of his eye, for it did sound very much like
Hermione, and Marjory's unconscious satire on her friend amused him.

"Hermione is so good at teaching!"

"Many people are much better at teaching than learning."

"But not Hermione! You did not mean Hermione."

"It comes to her more easily. So it does to a good many of us."

Marjory looked rather tried. "I must not interrupt you longer,"
she said, and she went away. Nobody heard the sighing utterance—
"Strange, while my father is so dear and good to me, he never does
appreciate Hermione!"



CHAPTER XVII.

ON BOTH SIDES.

HERMIONE would never place herself in a false position by striving
after that to which she had no lawful right. She had too much tact and
sense, too much regard for her own dignity, and for appearances
generally.

So soon as she saw clearly that Harvey and Julia were real master and
mistress, that she herself was merely a subordinate member of the
household, she withdrew all claims to authority, giving everything
over into Julia's hands. There were no struggles, no clashings.
The change was made at once, well and thoroughly. If Slade appealed
to her, "I am not the mistress now, Slade," she would say meekly;
"you must go to Mrs. Dalrymple." If Milton brought a complaint as of
old, "I have nothing to do with it now, Milton," she would answer,
with a touch of gentle sorrow. "I can only advise you to speak to Mrs.
Dalrymple." If the head-gardener desired her opinion, "I think I had
better leave it all alone," she would reply, sighing. "Mr. Dalrymple
must decide. It is better for me not to interfere."

No doubt it was wise and right to refrain from meddling, and so far
the change was made not only thoroughly but also well. Still, there
are different ways of doing what is right—so different, that even that
which is right may become that which is wrong simply through the mode
in which it is done. Hermione might have abdicated her authority
without giving the impression that she was an injured and suffering
person.

Somehow her sweet sad look and pensive utterances had an unhealthy
effect on those around. Hermione did not intend this, of course;
people seldom do intend to do any harm. She only wanted sympathy, and
liked to be interesting; and she did not measure the extent of her
influence. But the Hall servants and the villagers began more and more
to look upon her as one cheated out of her rights— "That poor dear
young lady!" they called her—while in inverse ratio they grumbled over
the "new master and mistress," not to speak of "that there furrin
lady, with her flyaway hair—and she a widder!!" —this being usually
the climax of rustic indignation. Harvey was aware of averted glances
and grumpy answers as he came and went, but neither he nor any one,
certainly not Hermione herself, knew how closely they were connected
with Hermione's "touching sadness," as some neighbours called it.

There could be no doubt that Mrs. Trevor, the dependent "wielder," had
the upper hand of her sister and brother-in-law. Where a woman is bent
on managing she can generally succeed in doing so, and Mrs. Trevor was
bent upon it. That which is tersely expressed by the old saying as
"playing second fiddle" was not at all in her line. Julia was nominal
mistress, but Mrs. Trevor ruled through Julia.

Though Harvey saw and disapproved, he was too lazy a man to stand out,
except where his own comforts were concerned, and he had not much
chance against Mrs. Trevor. It would have been his wish that nothing
in the house should be altered during at least some weeks, having
regard to Hermione's feelings, and Julia had no wish in the matter
apart from his. Nevertheless, before a week passed the drawing-room
had undergone a complete transformation at Mrs. Trevor's hands. Harvey
shrugged his shoulders, but submitted, and Hermione said nothing.
She only held aloof, determined to make no sign of pain.

This proud distance of bearing was noted by Julia Dalrymple with a
sense of strong disappointment.

For, despite what her husband had said about not taking Hermione
as her model, Julia had looked forward much and wistfully
to Hermione's companionship.

She was growingly conscious of something lacking in herself, something
which she could not at all define, even while she was aware of the
want. There was a sense of dissatisfaction, of insecurity, of
worthlessness, in all she had to do; express it how one will, it came
to this, that Julia hungered after what she had not, and she saw no
means of getting it unless through Hermione.

No use to go to her husband. Julia had learnt so much by this time—
had learnt it with a new pain. Dear as he was to her, passionately as
she loved him, they were in touch only as to the things of every-day
life. Beyond all was haze. Julia stood alone and lonely in her higher
cravings, for if he ever experienced the same he would not avow it.
To consult Harvey on any question of religious import she had found to
be almost as useless, though not so impossible, as to consult
Francesca.

But here was Hermione Rivers, good, really good; a thoroughly
religious person; one who read her Bible regularly, and believed in
the power of prayer; one who taught in the Sunday-school, and found
pleasure in Church-going, and went in for good works. Julia might have
a certain dread of over-much religious talk, yet that dread had gone
down lately before the stronger desire to learn. After weeks of delay,
she had come to Westford Hall, full of the thought, anxiously
expectant of what she might gain from Hermione.

Then disappointment fell. For the first greeting was chill,
the after-companionship was nought, the religions atmosphere was
nowhere. This excellently good and devoted girl, from whom Julia had
expected so much, was hardly more to her than a pensive and lovely
shadow, coming and going indeed among them, but keeping aloof, living
a life apart, seldom speaking needlessly, persistent in a gentle icy
sorrow.

Julia's loneliness grew upon her as time went by. Harvey was very
busy, riding about the place, looking into necessary matters which
did not interest her at all, except in their connection with him.
Mrs. Trevor largely undertook household arrangements, only requiring
a nominal assent from Julia. Callers came, but Julia did not take to
these new people; they were Hermione's friends, and too plainly pitied
Hermione, whereas Julia counted herself the person most to be pitied.
Position and wealth went for little in her estimation. She did crave
often for a true friend, one who would sympathise and understand below
the surface, not merely meet her politely and kindly above it; and
though she resisted the craving as almost a wrong to her husband,
it sprang up anew.

For there was no getting below the surface with him. He distinctly
repelled any attempt on her part to do so, distinctly shrank from it.
Julia became more and more aware of a certain something in him which
she could not fathom. There was a locked door, and she might not
glance through the door.

So weeks passed, and two lonely hearts walked side by side under the
same roof—one a girl's, and one a wife's—never touching, for Hermione
never guessed that the other needed her love.

Mittie ran wild these summer days, delighting in the country; yet not
so wild as some thought, for a new influence had crept into her life,
and already the plastic child-nature was responsive to the moulding
touch of that influence. A governess was talked of, but Francesca said
tranquilly, "No hurry; she might as well enjoy herself first;" and
neither Francesca nor any one else at the Hall knew how the child
haunted the Rectory. Even Hermione hardly realised it. Perhaps because
she had not been herself to see the Fitzalans so often lately as
usual.

She was a little shy of another tête-à-tête with Mr. Fitzalan. It was
impossible to forget that he had been allowed an unwonted glimpse into
her true self, and Hermione could hardly forgive herself for certain
things she had said.

Harry Fitzalan was not much at Westford through his long vacation,
not half so much as he wished to be. He had made other arrangements
in the spring, and they could not now be broken through.

"You look uncommonly dismal this afternoon, my dear," Mrs. Trevor
remarked to Julia one autumn day.

"Do I?" Julia had been yawning covertly behind a book. "I suppose
there is nothing to be cheerful about."

"Because Harvey is out? You don't expect him to give up shooting,
and sit at, home all day?"

Julia merely said, "No."

"Perhaps you will like to hear that I asked him this morning if we
were to spend the rest of the year in rural captivity?"

"Did you?" Julia privately thought this question ought rather to have
emanated from herself. "And he said—"

"Said he didn't know, of course. Harvey would not have been Harvey
if he had made any other answer."

"He was talking of Scotland the other evening-only he seemed doubtful
about Hermione."

Julia regretted her own words as soon as they were spoken. Mrs. Trevor
rounded her eyes with horror.

"Scotch moors! After this! Very well for Harvey of course, out
shooting all day—but imagine our condition! No, no, I had set my heart
on Brighton."

"Harvey can't endure Brighton."

"My dear, a man will commonly like what he is told he likes. That is
my experience. You leave it all to me, and I'll manage. We don't go
to Scotland this autumn."

"But, Francesca, if Harvey and I wish to go—"

"You don't. Neither of you has any real wish that way. Imagine us
three—you and Hermione and I—stranded in some dismal inn on a desolate
moor, with nothing to do, nothing to see, nothing to read, nothing to
think about! We should quarrel all day for sheer lack of occupation.
No, no—Brighton is the thing. Plenty going on there. We all are
getting positively stupified with the lack of a little wholesome
excitement. As for Hermione, nothing would do that girl more good than
to be shaken out of her pet rut. She has nothing on earth to do now,
except to pity herself; and to go gossiping round with the villagers.
Mischief-making, in fact."

The door opened slightly and was shut again, nobody coming in.

"Francesca, do be careful. If that was Hermione, she must have heard."

"She will only have heard a home-truth for once. Do her no harm—that."

Francesca snapped her fingers lightly, with a little laugh not quite
agreeable in sound.

Mrs. Trevor had a certain desire to "get hold of Hermione," as she
tersely expressed it, to feel Hermione in her power, and she had not
yet succeeded. Endeavour as she might, Hermione always slid gracefully
away, and the effort failed.

"I don't want her to hear home-truths from us. Harvey would be vexed.
He is always so anxious that we should make her happy."

"She doesn't make herself so, whatever we may do. I'll tell you what,
Julia, if people profess to be religious, they ought, in sheer
common sense, to recommend their religion by being civil and pleasant,
to say the least. I've no patience with this sort of nonsense—setting
up for being a saint, and making everybody wretched with her airs and
tempers. And, what's more, I don't believe in it. If religion itself
isn't humbug—and I have sense enough to know it is not—then Hermione
is a humbug. That's the long and short of the matter, and I believe
I shall end by telling her so one day."

A red spot rose to either cheek as Mrs. Trevor burst into these
unwonted utterances.

Julia gazed with astonished eyes. "Why, Francesca!" she said.

"Oh, you don't know—you don't understand half. You never see what is
before your eyes. I know exactly what it all means, and how we are
looked upon here. It's a case of angelic sweetness oppressed by
hardhearted relatives! Want of home-sympathy, and all the rest of it!
I wonder how long you expect it to be before you get beyond a distant
acquaintance with all the people round about?"

"But you don't suppose—"

"My dear, I suppose nothing. I know only that Hermione acts her part
consistently and cleverly. She doesn't count it to be acting,
of course. Nobody does, except my naughty self. It is genuine
depression, broken-heartedness, et cetera."

"I wish you would not sneer at everything and everybody," Julia said,
standing up. "I shall go for a walk."

She went alone, for Mrs. Trevor did not offer to accompany her. There
had been a shower, and Mrs. Trevor objected to country mud.

A solitary ramble was not ill-suited to Julia's taste. She liked time
for thought, and there was a good deal to think about just now in her
life.

Francesca's words rankled considerably. Could there be truth in them?
Was Hermione unreal?

A difficult question this for any outsider to answer with respect
to another, difficult enough for Hermione herself. For with many
people self-knowledge is very small in amount, and there are almost
unlimited capabilities of self-deception. Reality and unreality are
often strangely intermixed, and entire transparency is as rare as it
is beautiful.



CHAPTER XVIII.

A CHILD CONFIDANTE.

"MARJORY, you dear!" a soft voice said.

Julia had been for a good ramble, and was now on her way homeward,
through the meadow which bounded the Rectory kitchen-garden. It was
a low-lying meadow, sloping downward to the willow-fringed border of
a small stream, and Julia went among the willows to the very edge,
regardless of mud. She had on thick boots, and the trickle of water
proved attractive. While standing there, bent forward in the attitude
of observation, the lovingly-uttered words reached her from behind.

"Marjory, you dear!"

Julia straightened her back, and glanced round. She recognised
Mittie's voice, of course, though the tender intonation was not usual.

Just beyond the willow-margin Mittie had taken up her position on a
slight grassy rise, her ungloved hands clasped, her black eyes
glowing, her rosy lips pouting as if in readiness for a kiss.

But as Julia turned Mittie's face fell.

"Oh, I thought it was Marjory! Aunt Julia, you'll go right into the
water if you stay there. It's as slippery as anything."

So Julia found when she attempted to beat a retreat. The mud was in a
half-dry slimy condition, not favourable to upward progress, and the
child's prediction was very nearly fulfilled. Julia grasped at the
willows, and had a struggle to reach firmer ground.

"What made you go down there, Aunt Julia? Marjory told me I mustn't
never, if I was alone."

"I suppose I went because I was not under orders. What made you look
so sorry to see me, Mittie?"

Children do not often mince matters, and the reply came
unhesitatingly, "I wanted Marjory. She's such a dear."

"You ought to call her Miss Fitzalan."

"Marjory says I needn't."

"Well, it is getting late. You had better come home with me now."

"O no, I can't. I want to see my Marjory."

"But it is too damp for you here. I am sure your mother won't
like it."

Julia said her say, and was about to go on, not in the least expecting
compliance from the spoilt child. To her surprise a deep sigh sounded,
and Mittie's hand stole into hers.

"Yes, I'll come. Though I do want most dreadfully to see my Marjory,
but I promised I wouldn't be naughty."

Here was something new, certainly. Julia revolved the matter in her
mind for some seconds, as they proceeded by the muddy footpath.
Mittie's voice interrupted her cogitations.

"Don't you love Marjory, Aunt Julia?"

"I hardly know Miss Fitzalan," Julia answered.

"Well, I do. I love her, oh, ever so much. She is as good us can be,
a great deal gooder than cousin Hermione, only Marjory won't let me
say so, but I know it all the same. There's a funny old woman down in
the village, and I went to see her with Marjory, and she calls cousin
Hermione an angel. Isn't that funny? O yes, and so does old Sutton.
He says cousin Hermione only wants wings. I did laugh so; I couldn't
help laughing, though Marjory made a face at me to stop. It was so
funny to think of cousin Hermione having wings; but I think Marjory
is a great deal more like an angel than cousin Hermione, because you
know she is so kind to everybody, and cousin Hermione isn't kind
to everybody. She isn't kind to you, nor mother, nor me. I don't mean
that she's 'xactly unkind, you know, but she makes up a sort of proper
face, like that—" Mittie pursed her lips together and stared solemnly
ahead for two seconds, "and she won't smile nor have any fun. When she
speaks to the servants or anybody that's poor she smiles as pretty
as can be, but not to us, Aunt Julia."

"Little girls must not make remarks on grown-up people," Julia
replied, somewhat startled by the amount of infantine penetration.

Mittie looked thoughtful. Was she impressed by the rebuke?

"Aunt Julia," came at length, with portentous seriousness, "should you
think the angels haven't never any fun?"

"Really, Mittie—"

"Well, I asked Marjory one day, 'cause I wanted to know. And Marjory
said there was lots in the Bible about singing, and laughing, and
being merry—only she said it has got to be the right sort. I suppose
cousin Hermione hasn't learnt the right sort. I think she's dull,
and Marjory says the angels are never dull. Marjory is dull sometimes,
when her back aches so; but I do think she's a great great deal more
like the angels than cousin Hermione. She's always so good and dear,
and she never grumbles, and she does such lots for everybody, and she
loves me, and I love her—heaps!"

Then, after a long pause—

"And Marjory is going to teach me how to be good too."

Julia's clasp tightened round the small fingers.

"How is she going to teach you, Mittie?"

"I don't know." Another pause. "I think Marjory is different from
everybody. Don't you?"

"Different in what way?"

"Why—it makes her so sorry when she's done wrong, 'cause she can't
bear to do what makes God sorry. Aunt Julia, I don't mean never to do
wrong again. And that is why I'm coming home now, when you tell me."

"I am sure you will be a much happier little girl if you always do
what is right," Julia said sedately, not prepared for the prompt
return-question—

"Are you happy, Aunt Julia?"

Julia's heart throbbed in quick response. She could not say "Yes,"
and she would not say "No."

"What makes you ask?"

"'Cause you don't look as if you was—so very?"

"Perhaps I am not," Julia admitted. "But you mustn't repeat that
to anybody."

"Not to my Marjory?"

"No, certainly not."

Mittie pressed her little self closer to Julia's side in affectionate
wise. "I do love you to-day,—ever so much. And I know quite well
why you're not happy. It isn't because you're naughty. You're good."

"No; not good. No; I wish I were."

"Then, Aunt Julia, if you aren't good, why don't you tell Jesus?"

The childish question, falling reverently from those rosy lips,
dropped like dew of heaven upon the arid plain of Julia's heart.
She said nothing for two or three seconds, only turned the words
over in her mind. But a counter-query rose, and she spoke it out,
"If I did—what then?"

"Why, Aunt Julia! Don't you know that everybody who came to Him was
always healed? Marjory says so."

Julia offered no response. They walked through the village in silence
which was broken only by an occasional remark from Mittie, scarcely
heard. "Tell Jesus—why don't you tell Jesus?" sounded in Julia's ears
like some exquisite refrain, and she would have liked to ask, "Why
should I? Would He care to hear?" —but the utmost she could resolve
to say was, after they had entered the Hall grounds, "Sometimes you
can talk to me about what you learn from Miss Fitzalan."

"Oh, may I? Yes, I'll talk lots. Marjory won't mind."

"Marjory need not know. I don't want you to be chattering about me
to her—making her think that I am not happy," Julia said, with
questionable prudence, considering the age of her little companion.
"Mittie, what did you mean just now by saying that you knew quite
well why—"

Julia hesitated how to express herself, but Mittie caught up the
sentence with cheerful promptitude.

"Oh, I only meant, Aunt Julia, that when you're not happy it's because
of Uncle Harvey being such a naughty man."

"Nonsense, Mittie! What are you thinking about?" cried Julia,
indignant at the suggestion.

"I know! Old Sutton told me yesterday."

"Told you what?"

"About Uncle Harvey. He's got all cousin Hermione's money, and it is
very wicked of him." Julia was for the moment voiceless, and Mittie
proceeded calmly, "Old Sutton says cousin Hermione bears it like an
angel, and everybody is so very sorry for her, and nobody likes Uncle
Harvey. And I don't like him neither, not near so much as I did, and I
think I won't let him kiss me so often."

"Mittie! for shame! You don't know what you are saying!" Julia panted
rather than said. She could almost have shaken the child, yet she
restrained herself, not even setting free the little hand which she
held. Mittie was unaware of her wrath.

"But old Sutton told me, Aunt Julia, and he knows. Don't it make you
sorry, Uncle Harvey behaving like that?"

"Mittie, listen to me!" Julia turned upon the child a livid face,
spotted with red. She could hardly hold in her passion. "Listen to me!
You are never never to say such things about your uncle—never!
They are false and cruel. Sutton has been talking wicked untruths.
He must be a very bad old man. Uncle Harvey is a dear good uncle
to you, and I wonder you are not ashamed to listen to anything against
him. The money is his rightly—not Hermione's. It never was or could be
Hermione's. The estate was entailed; which of course you can't
understand; but it means that Hermione has no sort of right to the
place. Your uncle gives her a home, and he is not obliged to do even
that—it is all kindness. Will you remember what I am saying?"

Mittie might be in no danger of forgetting, but perhaps she was not
fully convinced.

"Sutton said he knew quite well," she murmured.

"If Sutton puts such notions into your head, we shall have to forbid
you ever to talk to him. I am sure Miss Fitzalan would not be pleased.
Did she hear all this?"

Mittie shook her head.

"I haven't seen my Marjory since Sutton told me. But Marjory does love
cousin Hermione, oh so dearly, and she is so dreadfully sorry
for her."

"Hermione has lost her grandfather, and of course everybody is sorry.
But this about her money is all nonsense. Mind, Mittie, you are not
to talk so again."

Mittie seemed to acquiesce in a childish fashion, and on entering the
house she ran away. Julia could not resolve to enter the drawing-room
at once. She was scared and angry still with the shock of that
accusation. It was unendurable that people in the place should be
saying such things of her husband. And if the notion were widely
spread, how was it to be met? Shutting Mittie's lips would not shut
the lips of other people.

Ten minutes later she stole down to the library, believing that Harvey
would be there, and her belief proved correct. A small lamp, lighted,
stood on the escritoire, and Harvey sat before it, writing letters.
Papers strewn carelessly about spoke of a less orderly nature in the
present than in the past owner of Westford. As Julia went in he
glanced up with a smile, his usual greeting, and then perhaps he
noticed something in her face not ordinary, for he asked at once,
"Anything gone wrong?"

"I don't know whether I ought to tell you."

"Nonsense. Tell me, of course. Francesca, to wit? Or is it Mittie?"

Julia sat down, just beyond the corner of the escritoire, looking
straight at him across it.

"Not Francesca, but Mittie," she said. "I don't mean that Mittie is to
blame. She is allowed to chatter with everybody. Only think of the old
gardener at the Rectory talking to that child about us—about you—"

"He is welcome!" Harvey said carelessly, as his wife hesitated.
The thought of Hermione was not at all in his mind just then.

"You have not heard yet. Talking about Hermione, and actually telling
Mittie that you had taken possession of the money which ought to
belong to Hermione."

Julia stopped, staring at her husband with wide-open eyes. She had
never seen him wear exactly such an expression before as he wore now.
The words were evidently startling and unexpected. His face hardened,
each feature partaking of a general rigidity, and his colour
distinctly lessened.



CHAPTER XIX.

THE REAL QUESTION.

HARVEY seemed to be conscious of something in his own look which he
could not quite control. He pushed the lamp aside with a hasty
gesture, and raised one hand to his forehead, placing it as a half
shield between himself and his wife, but he did not speak.

For one moment a feeling of horror had possession of Julia. It meant—
what could it mean? The unwonted paleness, the stiffened features,
the averted eyes, spoke to her of guilt, and of conscious guilt.
But—what guilt? How utterly absurd! Julia rallied instantly, wroth
with herself for the very idea. He was grieved, of course, with the
accusation, even as she had been. How could she expect him not to be
distressed at such things being said? Tears rushed to her eyes.

"Poor Harvey! It is horrid, I know. I wish now that I had not
told you."

Harvey stood up. "There are letters ready for the post," he said in a
curious curt voice, and he carried them himself into the hall, though
it was not yet post-time, and Slade always came to the library at the
last moment. When Harvey returned he seemed more like himself, as he
remarked carelessly, "Quite right to tell me! But, after all, people
will gossip. The less notice taken the better, sometimes."

"I did not think you would mind so much; I thought you would tell me
I was foolish to care."

"Do I mind? Well—perhaps it is rather an unpleasant notion, at first
sight. Besides, I have been seedy all day, to begin with. Westford
does not seem to suit me, and I believe I am getting tired of this
sort of life."

"Are you?" she said, with regret. He was standing a few paces off from
the escritoire, his face in shade, so that she could not see it well.
She came close, which was not what he wanted, and looked up anxiously.
"I am sorry you are not well. If I had guessed, would not have
bothered you."

"There is nothing much wrong. Perhaps I need change, and Francesca
advises Brighton." He would have turned away, but Julia's hand was
upon his arm.

"Does it hurt you to talk? I am so miserable about what that child
said. Of course it doesn't really matter—at least, I suppose not—but I
hate to have you accused of such a thing. Can't you take any steps
to meet the gossip?"

"I! No. What can be said, except that Hermione has no right
to anything not left her by her grandfather?"

"I wish he had left something; people would not talk so, then. It was
odd that he did not. Still, I don't see why you are to be blamed.
It was not your doing. If Hermione would only explain to the people
here—"

"No! Let it alone, pray, Julia!" Harvey spoke sharply, for once even
roughly. "The less said the better, I tell you. Pray don't meddle."

Julia scrutinised him in wonder, rather hurt. "Of course I will not
speak to Hermione without your leave," she said. "But do you suppose
that Mr. Dalrymple did not intend to leave her something—if he had
lived a little longer?"

Harvey's look grew hard again. "Possibly," he said.

"If he did—!" Julia's black eyes, soft now as Mittie's, were bent upon
him, and her second hand came with the first, holding his arm captive.
"If Mr. Dalrymple did intend, and we knew it, should we not be bound
to give to Hermione what he had meant her to have?"

"Certainly not."

"Are you sure?"

A red flush had come to Harvey's forehead—not a smooth brow now,
but lined and ratted. The flush spread slowly.

"I see no particular object in such suppositions."

"No, for of course we do not know that he meant anything of the kind.
Only perhaps the people about here fancy that it is so. I could not
understand at first what old Sutton meant, but it may be that. What do
you think?"

He shrugged his shoulders slightly. It was an occasional gesture
with him, the only un-English result of long residence abroad.

"Old Sutton's opinion is of small importance."

Julia was silent, not satisfied.

"Well, is that all you want?" he asked.

"No; may I say more? You won't be vexed, will you? I am not
business-like, I know, but it does sometimes seem to me as if things
were not right. About Hermione, I mean. It seems as if she ought
to have something more of her own. I can't help the feeling; though of
course I would not allow it to any one in the world except you."

"I hope not!" escaped her husband.

"No, of course; but still I have the feeling. I know that you are not
in any way bound. As I told Mittie, it is sheer kindness that makes
you give Hermione a home at all. Still I can't help fancying that she
really had reason to expect more from her grandfather, and that she
must be disappointed. And then there comes the question—if he didn't
do his duty, ought we not to do it for him? I suppose different people
would look upon it differently. But there must be a right and a wrong.
It isn't only a question of what one is obliged to do, but of what one
ought to do? Don't you see what I mean?"

"You certainly are suffering from some confusion of ideas, Julia,"
her husband said. He was collected now, and able to speak in his usual
manner. "But, as you say, you are not business-like. When women touch
upon money matters they are apt to go astray."

"Yes, on the mere business part of it. I don't think this is mere
business. It is a question of actual right and wrong."

"If any wrong was done to Hermione, my uncle was responsible."

"But you stand in his place now," Julia said slowly.

"That is different. Hermione was his grandchild. She is merely my
second cousin, with no particular claims upon me. Except that I have
promised to act the part of a brother to her, so far as she will
permit."

"And you do not really know that Mr. Dalrymple ever intended to do
more for Hermione?"

The question was very direct, but it had no answer. Harvey moved away
to the table, and turned the lamp a little lower.

"My dear, if you have nothing more to say, I should be glad to get my
letters done."

"Am I keeping you too long? Oh, I am sorry. I'll go at once."

She kept her word, losing sight of his non-response, and her last
glimpse was of her husband sitting down to the escritoire once more.

But he did not remain there, and the letters which he had pleaded were
not written. When the door closed behind her, he pushed pen and paper
aside, and went to an armchair. The subject they had been discussing
insisted upon attention. He could not give his mind to letters.

This "fretting ghost" of Hermione's claims, laid to sleep during many
weeks, sprang up in new strength; and the brief letter of the dead man
to his lawyer, read only once by Harvey, but never to be forgotten,
confronted him anew.

"I have resolved to settle the sum of twenty thousand pounds upon my
grandchild, Hermione, at once!"

Yes, that was it. Twenty thousand pounds! Of which Hermione possessed
not one penny.

"Actually telling Mittie that you had taken possession of the money
which ought to belong to Hermione!" This indignant utterance of
Julia's recurred next. But, of course, it was absurd. No "ought"
existed, so Harvey told himself, and it was no case of "taking
possession." What he held was his own, lawfully his own. While Mr.
Dalrymple lived, Mr. Dalrymple had the right to will what he chose
to Hermione, apart from the entailed land. Now Harvey had the right
to keep or give away, as he chose.

Yet still—

"It is a question of actual right and wrong," Julia had said.

Stuff and nonsense! It was a question of law. Women knew nothing about
business. Absurd of Julia to meddle in such matters. Besides, even if
it were a question of right and wrong, how could that alter the case?

"You do not know that Mr. Dalrymple ever intended to do more for
Hermione?" Julia's voice seemed to ask anew.

Yes, of course he did know, but he was not going to inform Julia.
Mr. Dalrymple's wishes did not restrain him. He was entirely free.
He was most willing to give a home to Hermione, and some day the
question of a marriage portion might come up. He fully meant to act
an elder brother's part, consistently with the extent of his means and
the requirements of the estate. But twenty thousand pounds! The idea
was simply ridiculous.

"My poor old uncle must have been in his dotage," Harvey muttered,
rousing himself from a dream, which had lasted much longer than he
supposed.

"Did you speak?" The door was opening, and Julia came in. "It is
post-time."

"Already?"

"Yes; I told Slade I would ask if you had any more letters ready."

"No, I have not."

She looked surprised.

"Slade will go in five minutes. Is there anything important that you
can finish in a hurry?"

"No, to-morrow must do. The fact is, I am not in writing mood," Harvey
added, with a little laugh.

Julia went outside to speak to Slade, then returned to her husband.

"I have been all this time in my room," she said, and she came to
stand by his side as before, looking down earnestly. He had not left
the easy-chair. "I have been thinking a great deal. May I tell you
what about? I was so puzzled, so worried before. I could not see what
was right. May I tell you what I have been thinking?"

"Well?" Harvey had much ado not to speak crossly.

"Something that little Mittie said has helped me. I don't mean that
about old Sutton, but something else. Don't you think that if we—"
Julia hesitated, flushing— "if we pray to be shown what is right,
we shall learn it in time?"

No answer came, and Harvey did not return her gaze. He merely looked
down, and seemed to wait for more. She went on, in a low happy voice—

"The thought is such a comfort to me; more of a comfort than I can
tell you. It seems to open out a fresh life—a kind of vista—do you see
what I mean? I am afraid I can't explain. But I have been feeling
lately that I know so little—and this is like a gleam of light—a way
in which one may be taught. At least, I mean to try. Don't you think
that if one does honestly want to do the right thing, and if one prays
to be shown, there will be an answer? I have had my Bible upstairs,
reading parts here and there. I moat begin to read it more regularly
now. And I could not help noticing one particular text I learnt the
words by heart to say to you. They are just this, 'What doth the Lord
require of thee, but to do justly, and to love mercy, and to walk
humbly with thy God?' Isn't that extraordinary? I never was so struck
with anything in the Bible before. Don't you think that is what we
have to do about Hermione—to do justly?"

Harvey moved in his seat, with a bored, not to say irritated,
expression.

"Anything more?" he demanded.

"But you do agree with me?"

"Certainly. I am sorry you count me capable of injustice towards
anybody."

"Oh, I did not mean—Pray don't misunderstand me! You don't mind
my having said so much, do you? I thought I might, for once."

"You are at liberty to say what you choose, of course. I should not be
sorry if I might, for once, have half-an-hour's peace."

"Harvey!" and tears rushed to her eyes. "Half-an-hour, after—"

"Yes, of course," he broke in. "But I should like a little longer.
I beg your pardon for being unsociable," and there was a touch
of apology in his manner. "I really have a wretched headache to-day,
and this sort of discussion doesn't improve matters."

"Have you? Oh, I am sorry. Why didn't you tell me sooner? I'll leave
you directly—only just one word," and her chest heaved. "You are not
really vexed with me, are you?"

"There's nothing to be vexed about. Except that I don't wish to see
my wife transposed into a feeble imitation of Hermione. As I once told
you, I do not admire her style. All I beg is that you don't discuss
these questions with anybody except myself."

Julia had had a complete douche. She murmured a promise of compliance,
and stole away.



CHAPTER XX.

TAKEN BY SURPRISE.

"So it is to be East Bourne, not Brighton," Francesca remarked,
entering the drawing-room.

More than a week had passed since Julia's talk with her husband about
Hermione—a talk not since renewed. Julia had not ventured to bring up
the subject afresh, and Harvey never alluded to it. She was conscious,
indeed, of a tendency on his part to avoid têtes-à-tête, and to shirk
opportunities for conversation.

Mrs. Trevor's announcement brought startled eyes in her direction,
alike from Julia reading in one window, and from Hermione writing
letters in another. Mittie, playing with a kitten on the floor, showed
interest rather than surprise.

"I should have preferred Brighton, for my part, simply because it is
bigger, and I have friends there. Besides, the height of the season
will be over in East Bourne, and at Brighton everybody would be coming
down from Town. However, I don't much care. Anything for change."

"Are we going to East Bourne, mother? Where is East Bourne?" demanded
Mittie's small voice.

"In Sussex, of course, child. Yes, we are going next week."

"Harvey has not told me," Julia observed, in a tone which brought the
quick response—

"You needn't be jealous, my dear. He would not have told me if I had
not dragged it out of him. I am not sure that he knew it himself
half-an-hour ago."

Julia could well believe this.

"He said he was not going to be hauled to Brighton, for he detested
the place—a great overgrown imitation of London. And I said I was not
going to be hauled to Scotland, to die of ennui on the moors. So we
adopted East Bourne between us as a compromise. I believe he was glad
at last to consent to any thing to get rid of me. Once away, he'll not
be in a hurry to come back. I shouldn't wonder if East Bourne were a
stepping-stone to Paris. He is not looking well, and I told him so,
and he allowed that he might be the better for a bout of sea air.
So we are to write and ask about lodgings—on the Esplanade, of course.
I shall be glad enough to be out of this depressing atmosphere.
There's certainly something in Westford which affects one's general
organisation. My complexion is growing positively yellow, and
everybody looks dismal."

"Westford is counted particularly healthy," Hermione said, laying down
her pen, and facing the trio.

"Places often gain false characters. It doesn't suit me."

Mrs. Trevor's patronising air of superior information was secretly
exasperating to Hermione, just as Hermione's distant dignity annoyed
Mrs. Trevor. Generally Hermione held studiously back from aught in the
shape of argument, refusing to put herself into Mrs. Trevor's power;
and this had gone on so long that she counted her own composure
inviolable, and did not fear being upset. But now, for once, she was
taken by surprise, shaken out of her usual line of action. The idea
of leaving Westford was altogether new to her, and she could not at
once resolve how to meet it. To a girl of her age, who had seen so
little of the world, the prospect of a change might have come
pleasantly, but all the pride of her nature rose up in arms against
the manner of the announcement. Why were not her wishes to be
consulted as well as Mrs. Trevor's wishes? Was it to be taken for
granted that she would calmly acquiesce in whatever was arranged,
without a desire or a voice in the matter? She would not condescend
to ask what was meant or expected, but resentment flushed her fair
cheek, and lent sharpness to the tone of her retort.

"A stranger's opinion can be worth little. Those who have lived
in Westford for years know better."

"One may become acclimatised, no doubt," Mrs. Trevor answered
carelessly, depositing herself and her draperies in an easy-chair.
"But I should be sorry to go through the years of previous misery."

"Is East Bourne healthy, mother?" asked Mittie.

"Splendid air, Mittie. As different from this as can be imagined."

"And will cousin Hermione come with us?"

The opportunity of giving that proud girl a set-down was irresistible.
"Of course," Francesca answered decisively. "This house is to be shut
up, and left in charge of Milton. We shall all go."

"I beg your pardon. I shall not!"

Julia looked frightened, for the suppressed voice spoke of no ordinary
passion. Hermione stood upright, her blue eyes blazing with anger,
her face crimson. Not one of the three had seen her thus before.

Mrs. Trevor laughed. "Oh! You will stay with the Fitzalans,
I suppose."

"That will be as I choose to decide. Your advice will not be asked."

Mrs. Trevor was not easily disconcerted, and to be conscious of power
over Hermione was what she had long desired. She showed no annoyance
at the very haughty utterance, but lifted her light eyebrows with a
half-droll, half-contemptuous air.

"Really? Well, advice is a cheap commodity. But I don't know what I
can have said to rouse so much ire! Do you, Julia?"

"Francesca, do be quiet—don't go on, pray!" implored Julia, in a
undertone.

"Not go on with what? My dear, I shall begin to think you are both a
little demented. Effect of Westford air, perhaps. I merely made known
Harvey's decision. If anybody has a right to be vexed, it is yourself;
for not having been told first. As for Hermione and me—why, we merely
have to obey orders. If Harvey settles to go to East Bourne,
I supposed it to be a matter of course that we should go too."

Hermione was endeavouring in a hasty fashion to put her papers into
the writing-case, but her hands shook so violently that the attempt
was a failure. She let them drop, and turned again to Francesca,
her eyes wide-open and blazing still, while her cheeks, brow, and ears
were one uniform burning red. As she stood rigidly erect, a kind of
convulsion of passion seemed to pass again and again through the
slight figure, and her voice had grown hoarse and rapid. Those who had
known Hermione in childhood would have recognised at once a recurrence
of the ungovernable childish temper, but such an outbreak had not been
seen for years, and her present companions could hardly believe their
own eyes, so astonishing was the change in the fair graceful girl
they had known thus far. Julia and Mittie stared, aghast, and even
Mrs. Trevor felt uncomfortable.

[Illustration: "I will not be managed by you as if I were a mere
child."]

"You know that it is not so!" Hermione said. "You know that you have
the settling of everything—not Harvey or Julia. They have the right,
but you have not. If they choose to submit to your dictation, they can
do so; but I will not. It is unbearable. I am made a mere cipher
in the house—treated as nobody—while you—Yes, you may toss your head
and look scornful, but it is true, and you know it! your one wish
is to trample on me—to make me feel myself a dependent! And you shall
not succeed. If I had my rights, things would be very different;
and you know that too. I will not be managed by you as if I were
a mere child. Say what you will, I do not care. I will not go to East
Bourne."

"If you please, ma'am—" implored Slade at the door, in great distress.
He had spoken three times, vainly seeking to win the attention of the
listeners to this unexpected tirade. There were other listeners also.
Behind Slade, in the open doorway, full spectators of the scene, stood
Mr. Fitzalan and Harry together—Mr. Fitzalan wearing a look of most
sorrowful gravity, while Harry was actually white to the lips. "This—
Hermione!!" seemed written on every line of his face. Slade was almost
as crimson as Hermione herself, with his grief and shame for her.

"If you please, ma'am—"

"Oh, it is Mr. Fitzalan!" Julia murmured, with a nervous start,
and she stood up to receive her guests.

Hermione looked at no one. Even then a dim consciousness of how
her words must have sounded to others did exist; but passion had too
complete a mastery to allow of any resumption of her usual manner.
Without a word to her friends she rushed rather than walked from the
room.

But for Mrs. Trevor's presence, it may be doubted whether anybody
would have spoken during the first two minutes. Hands were shaken and
seats were found, an oppression of embarrassment overpowering them
all. Julia had a scared look, Mr. Fitzalan was lost in thought, and
Harry seemed to be dazed. Mrs. Trevor threw herself into the breach,
rallying first, and bent upon smoothing things down. It would not do
to ignore what the Fitzalans had overheard. Her aim should be
to soften the impression made.

"You have come at rather an unfortunate moment," she said pleasantly
to Mr. Fitzalan. "Hermione is not often so excited—indeed, I may say
that I have never seen her so before. It is quite a new experience,"
and Francesca sighed. "We were discussing plans, and some little
remark of mine gave her pain, I am afraid. She is rather too
sensitive, poor girl—natural, no doubt! Her position is a trying one,
of course, do what one will to lighten it; and she has seen very
little of life, so she is disposed to magnify small troubles."

Mr. Fitzalan bent his head in answer. He showed himself in no hurry
to offer an opinion.

"My brother-in-law has just decided on a move to East Bourne for a few
weeks, and the idea is unpleasant to Hermione. I do, not know why,
for East Bourne is a particularly charming place. No doubt the change
will do her good, if she can make up her mind to it."

Julia broke in at this point, colouring distressfully. "I am not sure
whether my husband is at home just now, if you wish to see him—but
perhaps—"

"No; we met him on our way here. Harry is leaving to-morrow, and we
came for a good-bye word with Hermione."

"Yes. So very unfortunate," Mrs. Trevor observed blandly. "But perhaps
she will come down presently. A girlish tiff of this sort doesn't
usually last long. Hermione is a charming girl, but singularly young
for her years."

"I don't think we can wait," Harry said gruffly. "Marjory is expecting
us—" and he looked at his father.

"Hermione must come to the Rectory instead," Mr. Fitzalan observed,
though privately he felt sure that Hermione would not come until after
his son's departure. He called Mittie to his side, and talked about
the kitten, with his arm round the child; but even Mittie seemed
bewildered, not able to respond as usual; and after paying as short
a call as possible, the two gentlemen took their leave.

Francesca threw herself back, with a singular expression, as the door
closed behind them.

"Well, I don't envy that girl's sensations. To make such a complete
exposé of herself! The saintliness is for once at fault!"

Mittie stood near, gazing with eyes full of wonder. "What was cousin
Hermione so dreadfully angry about?"

"Nothing on earth, but because she can't have the management
of everything in her own hands. Cousin Hermione is a spoilt child,
and that's the beginning and end of the matter. More shame to those
who spoilt her!" added Mrs. Trevor, with a virtuous air peculiar
to those who are condemning in another their own faults.

"My Marjory says cousin Hermione is so truly good. And old Sutton
calls her an angel."

Mrs. Trevor's laugh had a sound of contempt. "It's an uncommonly
angelic temper. I doubt if your Marjory's brother will be of her
opinion after to-day. He didn't appear to be delighted."

"Francesca, there's no need to talk so to the child," Julia said,
in a pained voice. "Things are bad enough already. Why must you make
them worse? If I were in Hermione's place, I should be miserable."

Francesca sauntered out of the room, humming a tone to herself, and
Mittie remarked in childish imitation, "I should think cousin Hermione
must be miserable."



CHAPTER XXI.

"STIFF-NECKED."

HERMIONE was miserable. She had scarcely reached her own room, when
the tide of shame and unhappiness rushed over her, swamping even wrath
for the moment.

She knew how she had fallen, knew how she had disgraced herself,
knew how this petty ebullition of temper must have lowered her in the
eyes of all who witnessed it,—Francesca, Julia, Mittie, Mr. Fitzalan,
Harry, even Slade. Hermione went over the names, not refusing to look
the truth in the face. A bitter truth it was. She who so prided
herself on calm repose of manner and control of temper—she to have
been betrayed into a childish outburst of fury. Hermione could not
understand how it had come about, how in one instant her shield of
composure had given way. The thing seemed incredible, after all these
years of self-command.

A very agony of shame overpowered Hermione—shame at having so lowered
herself. That was the real grief; the unbearable pain. Her sorrow was
for her own disgrace. She despised herself for the fall, and she hated
Francesca for being the cause of her fall. As she sat by the bed,
her face buried in the pillow, her hands clutching the counterpane,
no softer regrets mingled with the bitter shame and anger.

For once she gave full rein to passionate tears. What did it matter?
Everybody knew. The very servants in the kitchen, down to the little
scullery-maid, all would hear.

No; Hermione wronged the faithful heart of Slade in thinking this.
Gossip enough goes on ordinarily in kitchen regions; but Slade was no
ordinary servant. Not for worlds would he have breathed to another
what should bring discredit on his beloved Miss Rivers. Even Milton
heard nothing from him.

As Hermione wept on, the thought of her grandfather came up, dear old
Mr. Dalrymple, kind and courteous to everybody, and always loving
to "his child." Oh, the difference of those days and these! Hermione
sobbed afresh, with a stricture of loneliness at her heart. And then
the resentful question arose, "Why, why had he left her so, left her
in the power of these people? Things might have been so different.
Had he really loved her as he seemed to do?"

A tapping at the door aroused Hermione. In one moment she sprang up,
tears ceasing. What business had any one to interrupt her? To come and
spy out her wretchedness?

The tapping paused, and soon recommenced. Hermione could not at once
respond. She pulled straight the disturbed bed-clothes, and walked
to the looking-glass. It was getting dark, still she could see how
blistered and reddened her face was. She smoothed her hair, and
deliberately lowered the blinds to make the room still darker. After
which she unlocked the door, and opened it a few inches, keeping a
firm hold upon the handle.

Julia stood there, pale and troubled, evidently nervous also.

"Won't you let me come in?" was faltered.

"I would rather be alone, thanks," Hermione answered icily.

"Harvey wished—he is so annoyed—"

Hermione stood silent.

"If you don't mind—if I might say just a few words," pleaded poor
Julia, really to be pitied, for she was almost equally afraid of her
husband's displeasure on one side and Hermione's anger on the other,
not to speak of Francesca's sneers.

"Well?" Hermione answered.

"May I come in? I don't like to talk outside, for fear of being
overheard."

Hermione yielded so far as to retreat three or four steps, carefully
keeping her back to the light. Julia entered, shutting the door.

"I wanted so much to say to you—Harvey and I hope you will not mind
Francesca. It is her way to say sharp things, but nobody thinks
anything of it. She has always done so. Harvey is excessively annoyed.
He says he hopes you will come with us to Eastbourne, of course;
but she ought not to have said what she did."

Julia's apologies might have had more effect, but for Hermione's
smarting consciousness of her own miserable failure.

"I do not see that there was any need to discuss the question
with Harvey. I must decide for myself."

"Yes, of course—I did not mean to discuss it, indeed. Only I knew
Francesca would talk, and I thought it might be kindest to tell him
myself first."

"Thanks!"

The manner was absolutely repellent. Julia shrank under it.
Her mission seemed a non-success thus far, but she would not at once
give up hope.

"I meant it kindly, indeed. Won't you believe so much? I can't
understand how it is that you seem to think all of us are against
you." Julia hesitated, and having no response, she went on earnestly,
"I would do anything to persuade you that we really want to make you
happy. It has been such a disappointment to me. Before I came I used
to fancy that you and I would be like sisters, doing things together.
Francesca was always so much older than me, more like a governess than
a sister. I thought you would be a friend; and I thought I should
learn so much from you, because I was told how good you were."

Was this said maliciously? Like lightning the query flashed through
Hermione's mind, and like lightning a negative was supplied by Julia's
troubled unconscious face. Then came the thought, hitherto crushed
into the background, how grievously she had dishonoured her "good"
profession, how unfaithful a "soldier and servant" she had shown
herself. Hermione well knew what should have been her next step.
Self-humiliation alone, with frank acknowledgment of having done
wrong, might tend to undo ill results, side by side with secret
confession and prayer for pardon. But alas, pride rose stiffly in the
way. Hermione only stood still, listening.

"There are things I want to know—I don't mind saying so much to you.
I have wanted it for a long time, and there seems no way of learning.
Things which I have never been taught, and which, I suppose, you have
always known—since you were a child, I mean. People are brought up so
differently. I did hope when I was coming here that you might help me.
But it always seems as if you only wanted to keep aloof, and did not
care to speak to me. Don't you think things might be a little
different?"

Was this actually Julia—the worldly irreligious Julia!—venturing to
imply that Hermione had been in the wrong—venturing to suggest what
Hermione ought to do? True, the suggestion was made humbly, and
Julia's eyes were full of tears as she spoke. But Hermione did not
love to have her duty pointed out even by her clergyman—much less was
she likely to tolerate it from Julia. Conscience was speaking loudly,
imperatively, within, yet Hermione drew up her head, answering in cold
tones—

"I do not see what difference I could make."

"Is there anything I could do differently so as to please you? I would
try, indeed I would, if I only knew how!"

Again there was a sound of tacit blame, not intended by the speaker,
and Hermione chafed beneath it.

"If you would only believe me! I do so want to have things smooth and
pleasant, not to have Harvey worried."

Hermione turned half away. "Harvey must take the consequences
of introducing such a person as Mrs. Trevor into the house!"

"My sister!" Julia said only these two words.

"She is not mine!" Hermione replied, resisting an impulse
to apologise.

"No; but—" Julia hesitated, having said almost as much as she dared.
"Hermione, won't you try to forget all this of to-day? Won't you kiss
me, and let me be your sister?"

The kiss was rather accepted than given. Julia sighed, with a baffled
feeling that she had done her utmost and had failed.

"It is so cold up here. Are you not coming down soon?"

"Not till dinner-time."

Julia left the room without another word, and half-way downstairs,
as she passed a little alcove on a landing filled with plants,
Mittie seized upon her.

"Aunt Julia! Aunt Julia! come in here! Mother's in the drawing-room,
and I want to speak to you first. Have you been to cousin Hermione?"

Julia had not meant the fact to become known. Being a bad hand
at fencing, however, she said, "Yes," and submitted to be dragged
into the retreat.

"Is cousin Hermione angry still? Or is she miserable?"

"I dare say she is not very cheerful; but that is not your business,
Mittie?"

"But I want to know." Mittie twined an arm round Julia's as she spoke.
"Because my Marjory says that if we do love God, Aunt Julia, we must
be awfully unhappy to make Him sorry. And cousin Hermione was in a
dreadful temper, wasn't she? So she ought to be miserable."

"People are unhappy in different ways," Julia answered judiciously.
"When were you in a temper last?"

"Oh, not for a whole week. And I don't mean to be, never again!"

"But everybody does wrong sometimes."

Mittie shook her head. "Nobody oughtn't," she said. "And when they do,
they've got to be awfully sorry, and go and tell Jesus, and try
harder."

"Yes; that must be right," said Julia, with a sudden wonder in her
heart—why had not she tried this plan?

There was sufficient light for her to see the upturned face of the
child, with its surrounding cloud of flaxen hair.

"Mittie, how do you know enough about—about Him—to be able to love
Him?"

"Why, Aunt Julia! You love Him!"

Julia made no reply.

"I know quite well you do, 'cause you've been ever so much nicer
lately. And that's why. I expect—" and Mittie paused thoughtfully.
"I expect cousin Hermione doesn't love Him much to-day, else she
wouldn't have got into such a rage."

"I don't think you had better talk about Hermione. We have to do right
ourselves, not to discuss other people."

"That's just exactly what my Marjory says," Mittie answered, in a tone
of profound satisfaction, as she clasped both arms round Julia's
waist. "Aunt Julia, I love you heaps more than I used. I told my
Marjory so, and I said I wished you'd come and hear her talk. And she
said you was too old."

"Too old!"

"Yes; you're as old as she is, and you don't want to be taught.
My Marjory said you was old enough to read your own Bible, and to
listen to everything in Church. And she said God's teaching was the
best. I do try now to listen in Church as much as ever I can, only I
s'pose I'm too little to understand it all. There's some hard words,
you know. But I always know what it means when His name comes in, and
it does come in so very often. That's nice, isn't it? And I s'pose
by-and-by, when I go to Church, God will teach me; but now, you know,
Marjory teaches me."

Julia would have wished to hear more of the simple prattle. Somehow,
it seemed to help her. Through the infantine words she caught glimpses
of truths hitherto veiled from her eyes.

Old enough to read her Bible, and to listen to everything in Church.
That suggestion would remain, Julia had read her Bible regularly
of late, but the reading had been formal, mechanical, superficial—
a thing that had to be done because it was right, not an earnest
searching to find out the mind and will of God. She had gone to Church
regularly, often of late twice instead of once on Sunday, but the
going had been from a sense of duty, not to join in heartfelt worship,
in prayer, in praise, and not with thirsty craving for instruction.
At least, if the thirsty craving had been there, she had not looked
to have it satisfied. Something of this dawned upon Julia as the child
spoke. But no more could be said, for Mrs. Trevor's voice sounded
in raised tones—

"Julia! Where are you? What are you doing?"

"I am here," Julia answered, coming out of the alcove, and descending
the lower flight. Mittie remained behind. Mrs. Trevor retreated before
Julia into the drawing-room.

"Where have you been? You might have remembered that I should be alone
all this time? Except when Harvey appeared, which was worse on the
whole than solitude. What made you go and tell him all about that
scene? He is in a nice state of mind!"

"I thought he ought to know."

"Another time it is to be hoped you will think differently. I never
heard such nonsense. As if a man could understand! I only hope for my
part that Hermione will not come with us to Eastbourne. I am perfectly
sick of that girl's airs. Have you seen her yet?"

Julia again said, "Yes."

"Where?"

"In her room."

"You went there! I declare you are more courageous than I should have
supposed! Well—what manner of reception had you?"

"She has not got over it yet."

"Of course not. And won't for another week. That's her style
of saintliness, my dear."

"Whatever is wrong, it is not Hermione's religion that is in fault.
It is herself!" Julia answered.

Mrs. Trevor was so astonished with the unexpected utterance, that she
stared at Julia, and made no further remark for full two minutes.



CHAPTER XXII.

THE QUESTION OF GOING.

HARRY FITZALAN walked home by his father's side in absolute silence,
and Mr. Fitzalan was too wise to break it. On reaching the Rectory
they separated, still without a word as to what they had witnessed.

"Poor boy!" the Rector murmured audibly in his own study, thinking of
the dazed look in those grey eyes, and the troubled set of the lips.

He said nothing to Marjory when she presently came in. It was not
Mr. Fitzalan's way to speak of another's wrong-doing unless there were
a needs-be: and there could be no doubt that Harry exchanged no
confidences with his sister. Marjory's unconscious talk about Hermione
in the evening showed this conclusively.

It was not till the afternoon of the following day that Harry would
leave. He was very restless and irritable meantime. Since he "had not
seen much" of Hermione the previous day—for he confessed to this—
Marjory suggested going with him to the Hall before lunch, and she
received a sharp snubbing for her pains. Marjory bore the snubbing
meekly, and made no further proposals. Harry betook himself to a book,
and seemed to be reading diligently, though he never turned a page.
He thought he had no wish to see Hermione again, not the slightest.
His idol had fallen from its pedestal with a crash. That crimsoned
face, blazing with anger, rose up as an impassable barrier between him
and the fair girl who had been lately the centre of his thoughts.

No; he did not want to see her. He had done with Hermione. It was time
to shake off all that nonsense. She was not the being he had imagined
her.

Yet somehow he could not make up his mind to leave the house that
morning. If he wished to avoid Hermione he ought to have done so,
for at any moment she might look in; but he stayed resolutely at home.
Perhaps there was a half-unconscious hope that if she came she might
appear in a mood of gentle penitence, which should do away with a
little of yesterday's cruel impression.

Hermione did not come, however, and Harry went off with a look of
fixed care upon his features. He would carry that vision of wrath with
him all through his next term of college life.

"Father, what has happened?" Marjory asked quietly, an hour later,
when Mr. Fitzalan entered. She was lying on the couch for one of her
short periodical rests.

"Sutton thinks the elm in the back garden ought to come down. I have
refused consent for the present."

"No; but I mean about Harry and Hermione. Do you know of anything?
Something is wrong, I am sure. He is not like himself."

Mr. Fitzalan debated what to say, standing by the table, and opening
a note which he found there. He had a wish that Marjory should be
unconscious when the two girls first met. But he knew that she must
hear soon of what had occurred, certainly from little Mittie, if from
no other quarter. He read his note slowly, and Marjory lay with her
eyes fixed upon him.

"If you would rather not tell me, I will not ask," she said. "Harry is
generally so open, but he has not been this time. So I dare say I am
not to know. Perhaps I can guess. Harry has been imprudent, and has
spoken too soon, and Hermione has given him a rebuff. That is what I
fancy, only you need not say 'Yes' or 'No'!"

"Nothing of that kind, Marjory," the Rector answered, looking up.
"We came upon a certain domestic scene which we were not meant to
witness; and sometimes the less one says the better in such cases."
His eyes fell upon a figure passing through the garden. "Ah, here is
Hermione herself. So we must put off explanation till by-and-bye."

Marjory thought there was relief in the tone. Hermione came in a
moment later, entering, as she always did, without ringing the front
door bell. She seemed to be restored to her usual self, but the
ordinary graciousness of manner had given place to a rather haughty
air. She held her head higher than its wont, and the blue eyes had a
combative expression, as of one on the look-out for opposition.
Mr. Fitzalan would fain have seen different tokens.

"Harry has gone off. I am so sorry," Marjory said.

"Yes, I supposed he would leave before this. I—could not well come
earlier," and there was slight hesitation. She turned then to Mr.
Fitzalan; "I was sorry to see so little of you both yesterday, but I—
it could not be helped. Mrs. Trevor had behaved to me in a most trying
way. Of course—" and a faint flush arose— "I am vexed to have been
betrayed into speaking hastily. But I had great provocation."

Her eyes went to Marjory as if in appeal, and Marjory said at once,
"My father and Harry have told me almost nothing, so I do not
understand. I think I had better leave you with—"

"O no!" and there was a manifest shrinking from the proposal. "I have
nothing to say which you may not hear. I have come to ask something
of you both—a great kindness. Did they explain to you yesterday,
Mr. Fitzalan, about this East Bourne plan?"

"It was mentioned. I do not know particulars."

"I cannot go, of course. May I come here for a time? Will you take
me in?"

Her lips remained parted with a look of entreaty, but a motion
of Mr. Fitzalan's hand checked the eager response springing from
Marjory. "Why cannot you go?" he asked gravely.

"It is impossible."

"The change would be pleasant, and you are not absolutely tied to
Westford by duties which cannot be laid aside. I suppose it will be
a matter of a few weeks only."

"I don't know. It may be longer. But—"

"You have had very little variety as yet. It is good for both mind and
body to come in contact with fresh scenes and fresh phases of life.
There is a danger of getting cramped and narrowed by moving always in
one small circle. I should be sorry if you did not take advantage
of this opportunity."

"I cannot!" she said.

"There may be difficulties which I do not see. The thing itself is
certainly desirable. East Bourne is a particularly bright healthy
place, with a good deal going on. The change from this quiet country
life will be thorough."

"I do not want change. I cannot go!"

"Why not?"

"It is impossible. I have said that I will not."

"That would hardly be a sufficient reason. The mere fact of having
been betrayed into saying a thing hastily—"

Hermione flushed up. "I cannot take back what I have said."

"Even if that which you said was wrong?"

Marjory gave one quick glance at them both, said quietly— "I will be
back in a few minutes," —and was gone. Hermione's hasty, "Oh, don't
go!" did not deter her.

Hermione held up her head rigidly, but her lips were trembling. "Then
you will not take me in!" she said, in a tone of grieved reproach.
"I did not think I should have asked that in vain from such old
friends. I see now how alone I am!"

"The question is not what you or I would wish, my dear child, but what
is right. I am anxious not to help you to a hasty decision, which you
will some day regret."

"It is not hasty. I have been thinking half the night. I cannot and
will not go to East Bourne, after the way in which I have been
treated. You are judging me hardly, not knowing all."

"Try to tell me all; I should like to understand the matter fully."

Hermione found herself in a difficulty. She began to detail exactly
what had passed, and came to a standstill. The words uttered did not
sound nearly so heinous on a repetition as they had first sounded to
herself. After all, it had been more a question of tone and manner
than of words, and Hermione was not clever at reproducing another's
manner. After a break she began again, only to come to a second
standstill, tears of vexation filling her eyes.

"Is that all?"

"No; I can't make you understand. There was more, of course. But, it
was the way she did it—"

"That I can believe. Much more depends upon the way in which a word
is said than upon the word itself. Still, I can see no real cause
for a serious break with your relations."

"I don't want to have a break. Only I cannot go to East Bourne."

"Because you were not told of the plan till after Mrs. Trevor!"

Hermione rose suddenly. "I see I shall have no help or sympathy here.
I thought things would be different. It is of no use my staying
longer. Please tall Marjory—"

"No, I am not going to tell Marjory anything. You shall tell her
yourself. Why, Hermione, my child," he went on kindly, "you are not
going to take offence with such an old friend as I am. That would be
strange indeed. Try to be wise, and to look upon this matter in the
right light."

"I am not bound to go to East Bourne unless I wish."

"Not bound in the abstract, but some attention to your cousins' wishes
is their due. If Mr. Dalrymple is content to leave you behind—"

"Harvey has no control over my movements."

"Yes; he is head of the household, and you are his dependent."

The words seemed cruel to Hermione. "I am not likely to forget that,"
she said, in choked tones.

"Then we need say no more about it. After all, the whole question
hinges on one point—what is the right thing for you to do?"

"I cannot go to East Bourne," she persisted.

"Not if you distinctly see it to be right?"

"I have said I would not. I cannot take that back."

"Then, Hermione," he answered gravely, "it is very evident that with
you the pleasing of self ranks first, the doing of what is right ranks
second. Is that true service?"

Hermione burst into tears; but still there were no signs of yielding.



CHAPTER XXIII.

MRS. OGILVIE.

"So you and Harvey are going for a drive?" Francesca remarked.

It was a tolerably fine afternoon three days later. The high dog-cart,
Harvey's favourite vehicle, stood before the front door, the two
spirited horses, Prince and Emperor, champing their bits and tossing
their heads, eager to be off. The men at their heads seemed to have
some trouble in restraining them. Julia was on the doorstep, dressed
in hat and jacket, a pair of gloves in her left hand. Mrs. Trevor had
come out of the drawing-room, with a woollen shawl round her
shoulders.

"I thought I had told you. Harvey has some business to arrange with a
gentleman eight miles off—Captain Woodthorpe is the name, I believe.
He asked me to go with him. You would not care for the drive."

"Thanks—not I! If Paris boulevards were in question, that would be
another matter. Nothing is more dismal than interminable country
lanes, with dead leaves dropping in all directions, and the prospect
of coming home in a pelt. Nothing to see, and nobody to see one! No;
I'll wait for East Bourne. There'll be a chance of meeting some human
beings on the parade. Besides, I don't like those horses. The last
time I went out they frightened me to death with their pranks."

"Harvey would know if they were not safe."

"Harvey knows everything, of course! My dear, what man ever thinks
about safety in connection with horses? He just wants to make a show.
So long as he has the best thorough-breds in the country round,
his neck may take its chance, and his wife's too. But I prefer not
to have mine broken."

"You won't keep well if you never go out."

"There's nothing to go out for in Westford. I don't want to cultivate
a country complexion, thanks—and my wardrobe wants attention. One will
have to be respectable in East Bonnie. Is Harvey still set upon not
going till Thursday or Friday in next week?"

"Quite!"

"Absurd! We shall just lose those lodgings in Mostyn Terrace. It's
nothing on earth but Hermione's nonsense, otherwise we might be off
on Tuesday. What does she mean to do?"

"I don't know," Julia answered, in an undertone.

"Nor anybody else, apparently. Mittie asked Miss Fitzalan if Hermione
meant to come with us, and Miss Fitzalan said she was not sure. If I
were Harvey, I would make her say 'Yes' or 'No' at once, without any
more nonsense."

"She has said 'No."

"In a passion; but that means nothing. I believe the Fitzalans won't
take her in, and she is waiting to arrange something else before she
speaks." A shrewd guess this on the part of Mrs. Trevor. "And Harvey
is just giving her extra time to make arrangements. If he had decided
to go straight off without delay, she would have had no choice about
coming. Much the best plan! Not that I want her in East Bourne, but I
shouldn't be sorry for once to see her compelled to give in."

"Francesca, do be careful! You will be overheard," Julia entreated,
in alarm at the raised tone.

"No fear, my dear! John hasn't any attention to spare from the horses.
And as for Hermione, she's going the round of her favourite cottages,
I suppose, preaching patience to all the old women, and expatiating
on her own wrongs. I wish some of them would preach to Hermione for a
change. She needs it, if any one does."

To Julia's relief, Harvey appeared. He seemed in unusually good
spirits, and she was much delighted at his proposal to take her
with him. Of late he had systematically avoided prolonged and
unnecessary têtes-à-tête. Twice, at least, when she had offered to be
his companion in the dog-cart, he had had out the brougham instead,
persuading Francesca to join them. The feeling appeared now to have
worn off.

The horses, once off and out of the garden, claimed all Harvey's
energies. John sat aloft behind, with folded arms and stolid face.
Julia was supremely happy, quite content to be silent and to watch
proudly her husband's capable handling of the reins. Ordinarily she
was apt to be nervous about horses, but when Harvey sat beside her
she did not know what fear meant.

"We have done our first two miles in style," Harvey remarked, when
they came to a hill so steep that the horses showed themselves willing
to walk. John dropped to the ground, and strode in their rear,
apparently glad to use his limbs.

"Have we really come two miles already? I never know distances
in Westford."

"What was Francesca saying about Hermione?"

The question took her by surprise, for he usually shirked as far as
possible all talk respecting Hermione and her doings. Julia glanced
at him quickly, but failed to decipher his look.

"She was wondering what Hermione would do about East Bourne. Nobody
seems to know."

"Hermione must come with us, of course. I depend upon you to arrange
that."

Julia felt and looked dismayed. "But I have no power over her."

"You are the right person. Francesca has nothing to do with it."

"But I don't think either Francesca or I could turn Hermione, if she
has made up her mind. She is so very determined."

"I always thought there was a spice of obstinacy—"

"Is that obstinacy? I thought it was firmness."

"People generally confuse the two. Determination will hear reason, and
obstinacy won't. Obstinacy sticks to what it has said, just because it
has said it. That is Hermione all over."

Julia could not question the assertion. She was aware of its truth.

"The fact is," Harvey added, "I particularly wish Hermione to go with
us, and I look to you to bring it about."

"Would you mind so very much if she paid a visit to the Fitzalans
instead?"

"Yes; and she will not go to them. I have had a few words with
Mr. Fitzalan; but don't mention this. He thinks with me that it is too
soon for a break, and that she will shake down better among us if we
have a few more weeks together—especially away from Westford. There
has been too much talk among the good folks here as to her real and
supposed troubles."

"Yes—perhaps—" Julia began, and paused. "Francesca will have it that
Hermione gossips with the old women in the cottages."

"It is not supposed to be gossip, but I dare say she manages to look
pathetic, and to work on their feelings. I want to get her out of it
all for a time."

"I don't see what I am to do."

"You must arrange it, my dear, one way or another. Women can always
manage these things. I should be extremely annoyed if Hermione stayed
behind just now. It would give additional colour to a great deal of
nonsense that is talked about her and us. And you must contrive
somehow to hinder Francesca from exciting her."

Two "musts" easy to utter, but hard to carry out—how hard Julia knew
too well. She made no further protests, however, only gave herself up
to consideration of the difficulty. The top of the hill was reached,
and John swung himself up behind. Then they were off again at full
speed, trees and hedges sweeping past unnoticed by Julia in her
abstraction.

"Is this Captain Woodthorpe's?" she asked, waking up with an
astonished start when the horses came to a standstill.

"This is Captain Woodthorpe's—queer little house, isn't it? And a
queer place for any man to choose! Not even a cottage within a quarter
of a mile."

"I suppose the village is not far-off."

"A mile or more. It must be deadly dull—two people living together."

"His wife?"

"No; his daughter. Will you come in? They are rather agreeable
people."

"O no; I would rather wait outside."

Harvey put the reins into her hands, John taking up his position once
more at the horses' heads. Julie studied dreamily the trellis-work
of the porch, and the jasmine trained prettily thereon, till roused
by voices.

A grey-haired man, thin and upright, stood beside her husband on the
gravel-walk; and beyond them was a lady in black, perhaps about
thirty-five years old, somewhat tall and largely built, with a pale
strong face, hardly handsome, but interesting from its sweetness and
its calm capability. The thought came to Julia, "That is one whom
I could lean upon in trouble!" She little dreamt how soon this should
be put to the test.

"Julia, Captain Woodthorpe and Mrs. Ogilvie wish you to come indoors
for a cup of tea."

Harvey handed her down, and Julia made no resistance. She was willing
to see more of Mrs. Ogilvie—a widow evidently, but a widow of a
different type from Mrs. Trevor. Greetings were exchanged, and the two
gentlemen returned to the Captain's study, whence apparently they had
emerged, while Julia found herself in a small sitting-room,
old-fashioned but cosy. Mrs. Ogilvie led her to a seat near the fire.
"It is chilly to-day," she said, "especially for driving. Will you not
take off your jacket, for fear of a chill when you go out?"

"I never take cold, thanks," Julia answered; and soon the question
followed, in some wonder, "Do you really live here all the year
round?"

"Except a month in London at Christmas."

"And you like it?"

Mrs. Ogilvie smiled. "My father does," she said.

"But you?"

"I should not mind a few neighbours near at hand."

"Have you none?"

"None near. I am a fairly good walker, and we have an untirable pony.
It is not, perhaps, the life I would choose; but, when a life is
chosen for one, apart from one's own wishes, there is the comfort
of knowing that it must be right."

"Is Captain Woodthorpe so fond of the country?"

"Yes, of absolute country, as country. He does not like a chimney-pot
to be within view, except his own. Not from any real objection
to society. I hardly know what gives rise to the feeling. He says
he cannot breathe comfortably among houses."

Julia looked her sympathy. Mrs. Ogilvie asked next—

"How is Miss Rivers?"

"Quite well, I believe." Julia grew suddenly shy. "Are you one of
Hermione's friends?"

"Not in any intimate sense. I was very fond of her mother in my
childhood, and that gives me a particular interest, of course,
in Hermione. We only meet occasionally, however. She is a pretty
girl."

"Yes," Julia assented.

"She was quite 'the old man's darling' while Mr. Dalrymple lived."

"Yes."

"And now, perhaps, she is a great pet with all of you?"

There was a curious expression hovering round Mrs. Ogilvie's lips
as she put the question. Did she expect an affirmative in reply?
Julia hesitated, then said—

"No!"

"Ah!" said Mrs. Ogilvie.

"I don't know why she is not. I wish she were. My husband and I wish
so much to make her happy. And everybody thinks Hermione so
wonderfully sweet and good; yet somehow we don't get on well. I could
love her if she would let me, but I always have a feeling of being
almost despised by Hermione. Perhaps I ought to say 'disdained.'
'Despised' is too strong an expression."

Julia had not had the least intention of saying all this. The words
broke from her, drawn out by that quiet comprehending face. She caught
herself up suddenly—

"I am sorry to say so much. Harvey would not be pleased. He hates
gossip, and, indeed, it isn't my way. Please don't let it go further;
and forget it yourself. Such things are best not talked about, and I
dare say we shall fit in better by-and-by. Perhaps it is partly my
fault that we don't now."

"No, I think not. I hardly expected to hear anything different,"
Mrs. Ogilvie answered. For half-a-minute she studied carefully the
young face before her. Twice Julia's black eyes were lifted to meet
the gaze, and sank before it. At the half-minute's close, to Julia's
exceeding surprise, Mrs. Ogilvie bent forward and kissed her cheek.
Julia flushed up brightly, with an odd shy sense of pleasure.

"Hermione is a girl of peculiar temperament, and she has had a
peculiar training," continued Mrs. Ogilvie. "I know her character
well. You need not regret having spoken frankly, for I never repeat
things. Perhaps I am as good a confidante as you could have chosen,
for having loved her mother so dearly seems to give me a kind of right
over the child herself. She is not a child now, but one clings to the
term."

"I don't think I have heard Hermione speak of you."

"Very likely not. I am not a great favourite of Hermione's."

Julia's wondering eyes made Mrs. Ogilvie laugh.

"My own fault, I am afraid. I had once to suggest to her that a
certain line of action was not right, and Hermione did not seem
grateful for the suggestion. But perhaps she has got over it now,
and I should like to see her again. Cannot you both drive over to
lunch one day next week?"



CHAPTER XXIV.

PRINCE AND EMPEROR.

"I AM going to take you two or three miles round, instead of straight
home," Harvey said, as they started. Julia was turning back to wave a
farewell. "So you like Mrs. Ogilvie?"

"Very much. Oh, very much, indeed. She is charming!"

"Mrs. Ogilvie says the same of my wife."

"Does she? I am glad if she likes me. But when did she say it?"

"When you ran back into the house for your shawl."

"She had not much time then. Harvey, isn't it odd that she should be
an old friend of Hermione's mother, and that Hermione should never
have spoken her name?"

"I don't pretend to understand Hermione's ways. Hermione's mother must
have been considerably Mrs. Ogilvie's senior."

One of the horses shied, and both were off at a pace which required
Harvey's best handling. For a while neither spoke. He glanced round
presently to say, "Not frightened?"

"O no; not with you here."

"Some women think it necessary to scream on these little occasions.
Of course, if you wished to ensure the horses running away, that is as
good a mode as any."

"But I don't wish it," Julia answered, laughing. "And they never do
run away."

"Well, not seriously," Harvey answered, with one or two recollections
in his mind which were not known to Julia. "I am taking you this way,
that you may see a pretty view from the common."

"Not the common near us?"

"Seven miles or more off. You have not been to it yet. There is a
steep hill to climb, and then a flat tableland extending any distance.
John will have an opportunity to stretch his legs again."

"Yes, sir!" responded John smartly from behind.

The hill was reached in no long time, being about a mile distant from
the captain's little house, as Harvey informed Julia. Steep it was
unquestionably, but the horses went up in brisk style, apparently no
whit fatigued. John, who had dropped down for a walk as a matter
of course, was left in the rear.

"After all, he might as well have kept his seat. We have to wait for
him now," Harvey said, when they gained the top.

"One minute won't matter."

"Not unless the horses object."

The horses plainly did object. A vision of food and stable no doubt
lured them onward, and they had at all times a marked dislike
to standing still in harness. They grew exceedingly restless,
and Harvey's strong grasp could barely hold them in.

A broad common stretched far ahead, and the road led straight across
it, while on either side lay short grass dotted by occasional clumps
of furze.

"Make haste!" cried Harvey.

John obeyed, coming at a run. They had not to wait many seconds, and
he was already within six yards when a pig rushed grunting from behind
the nearest clump.

That settled the matter. Almost before Julia caught sight of the
intruder the horses were off, and John could be seen as a diminishing
object in the distance.

Julia uttered no sound, for she knew her husband's dislike to
interjections at critical moments. Not that she counted the moment
critical. She merely said to herself, "How tiresome!" and expected
that Harvey would at once pull up.

But he did not. A feeling of surprise dawned upon her first, and then
a consciousness of the tremendous pace at which they were going, and
then—she looked up into Harvey's face, and knew from the set lips that
something was wrong.

"John is so far behind. Must we not go back?" she asked.

"Presently. Keep your seat, Julia. Hold on firmly."

"Can't you stop them?"

"Presently," came again.

"Is there any danger?"

"Plenty of room ahead, fortunately. I shall let them have their swing.
Don't be shaken out, that's all."

Julia obeyed his orders, and sat perfectly still. On and on they flew
in a mad rush. The road was very straight, and so long as this lasted
the danger might be counted small; but there was nothing to check the
horses; no human being was in sight, and in time the common must end.

It seemed to Julia that their speed increased rather than diminished.
She had never known anything like it. It was evident that Harvey had
at present no choice about allowing the horses to go, for go they
would, and the utmost he could do was to use some measure of guidance,
keeping a sharp look-out for obstacles.

Grass and furze-bushes flashed past in dizzying style. Julia felt
bewildered, hardly able to think. Fear existed, but was kept under.
Her one distinct wish at the time was not to embarrass her husband.
She sat by his side like a statue, only swayed by the swaying of the
vehicle.

"We are coming to something different," she said at length quietly.
For the road in advance rose a little and disappeared among trees.

Harvey knew that the common ended there, and that a long descent
followed; not so steep, happily, as the ascent by which they had
reached the common, yet steep enough to be a very serious matter
if they were to go down at this rate.

"Can't you stop them?" Julia asked once more.

"No."

The monosyllable, the absence of comfort or encouragement, said much.
So also said Harvey's bent brows. Julia grew paler, and shrank an inch
closer to him. The thought came to her that she ought to pray, and she
tried, but her mind was a blank, every faculty being concentrated into
one fearful expectant gaze ahead.

Up and up the slope they thundered, till in a moment burst upon Julia
the long vista of that straight descent which had been in Harvey's
mind as a vivid picture of peril near.

A strong rutted road, with a wall on one side, a hedge and a ditch
on the other, scarcely curving at all until far below, where a sharp
bend shut off what lay beyond.

"Harvey!" did at last leave Julia's lips in faint cry. No answer came
from him, only a strange pallor had come into his face, and his eyes
seemed to be looking blankly far on.

Both knew that this might well be a rush to death. But no time for
thought remained before they were whirled downwards.

Pebbles were dashed aside by the horses' hoofs, and the wheels jolted
with bounds over the larger stones. It was as much as Julia could do
to keep her seat. She held on firmly, noting with a singular keenness
of perception her husband's blanched look. Could it mean fear? He was
a brave man ordinarily, not given to showing fear.

Suddenly he spoke, not turning his head—

"If we get round that corner it may be all right, but if not—"

A pause; and as if the words were forced from him, drops standing
on his brow, he said—

"If I am killed, and you get through, take care that Hermione has her
rights!"

She had no space in which to answer him. A glance alone was possible.
Then the bend was reached, and with a great swerve they went round,
safely so far, but not to safety. Before one breath of relief could be
drawn, they saw the road ahead lying level, and in the very middle
of it an old ramshackle cart, with no room on either side for them
to pass. The owner of the cart was out of sight, and the unharnessed
rough pony, browsing in the hedge, lifted his head with a look of mild
interest at the thunder of horses' hoofs.

A gasp; a moment's despair; a crash; a sense of everything collapsing;
and a brief darkness. Julia came to herself slowly. She sat up,
bewildered and faint, but conscious of no injury. At first she could
not make out where she was, could not recall exactly what had
happened. Only there was an impression of wild rattle and rush; and
now all was so still; not a sound to be heard, except leaves rustling
near.

It dawned upon her stunned senses that she had been tossed clean out
of the dog-cart and over the hedge, falling on a great heap of weeds
gathered together for burning, soft almost as a feather-bed. And she
felt herself unhurt!

But Harvey!

Julia struggled to her feet. All around seemed to sway and surge,
yet she could not attend to such sensations, could not yield to
weakness. The other side of the hedge had to be gained, and she
hastened along it, seeking vainly for a gate. A gap at length
appeared, and Julia fought her way through, heedless of scratches
and torn clothes.

Once more upon the road she saw a heap of something not far-off,
which her dazzled eyes could with difficulty make out to be the
prostrate horses and the shattered remains of cart and carriage,
all in one piled-up mass, except that two wheels and much lesser
debris were flung loosely around. And Harvey—Harvey—her one agony
was for him. As she hurried nearer, trembling and sick with terror,
she saw him to be part of the mass, lying half underneath it, while
two hoofs of the nearer horse were almost touching his chest. His face
was ghastly pale, the eyes wide-open in helpless appeal.

"O Harvey! what can I do? What shall I do?" was Julia's cry.

"Hush don't call out. If Prince begins to struggle, it is all up
with me."

"Is it the cart keeping you down? Are you hurt? Oh, let me help
you away!" she gasped. "You will be killed there."

"I can't move; don't touch me. Julia, listen. You must sit down
on Prince's head at once. If he tries to get up, I am done for!"

Julia understood, though she was so dazed as to be hardly able to
distinguish one horse from the other. But those iron hoofs were guide
sufficient. The poor creature's visible panting showed him to be
alive, while Emperor lay to all appearance dead. Julia stumbled
forward among the debris, and sat down upon the huge glossy head,
rumpled and foam-speckled. She would have been afraid of the position
generally, for horses were a source of timidity always, unless she
felt herself under Harvey's protection; but fear could have no place
now, except for another.

"Are you hurt much?" she then asked tremulously.

"I don't know. Yes."

"Where? Please tell me."

"I don't know."

"If I could only do something! What can I do?" she implored. "If I
might help you to get away."

"No, you must not stir. Mind, Julia, if you value my life, don't let
anything make you get up till help comes—till I am away. It is the
only hope for me."

He spoke distinctly, but in a faint far-away voice, as if the words
came with effort, his eyes closing.

"I will not!" Julia said firmly.



CHAPTER XXV.

A TRYING POSITION.

SHE sat on, resolutely, bravely, though with a heart-sinking which she
had never felt before, as she thought of the time which must pass
before John could possibly come up.

Now and then a heave or quiver passed through Prince's massive frame;
and Julia knew that but for her weight upon his head he would
doubtless begin struggling to get up. Sometimes the quiver passed on
to those great hoofs, all but resting against her husband, and each
time Julia's heart leaped with a wild fear lest the struggle should
take place despite all she could do. She knew little of horses from
practical experience, and she could not feel Harvey's security that so
long as she sat there he was safe.

The other horse lay entirely motionless, with every appearance of
death. Poor Emperor! he had borne the brunt of the collision, his
broad chest coming full against the cart.

It was lonely country around, with no sign of human habitations. The
pony browsing in the hedge browsed still, but farther off, whither he
had been startled by the accident. Had any human being stood near,
that crash must have acted as a summons. Julia felt this, and though
she forced herself to call for help, she did it hopelessly, expecting
no result.

When she called, Harvey opened his eyes for a moment. That was all.
He seemed unable or disinclined to speak. Julia was frightened at his
increasing ghastliness of hue; yet there were no actual signs of pain
on his face, and he lay quietly, not appearing to suffer from the
weight which held down his lower limbs. She longed to get to him,
to do something for his personal relief; but he was out of reach,
and she dared not stir—knew she must not. Would John never come?

Twice again she asked her husband how he was, and each time he
answered faintly, "I don't know." She longed to know what was wrong
and where he was injured, yet she dreaded to annoy him by questions if
he wished to be let alone.

So there seemed nothing to be done but to wait, keeping her seat, and
refusing to listen to her own fears. She watched for John intensely,
yet he did not come. Now and then a horrible doubt assailed her; what
if John tried some other road, and failed to find them? But this she
knew was not likely. They had come in a direct line, following the
main road.

How the minutes dragged, one by one, each trailing its slow length
more wearily than the last. Julia began to feel that she must have sat
there for hours. Her head swam and her eyes grew heavy with the
strain. She had left her watch at home, and had therefore no means
of gauging the lapse of time.

Harvey's eyes opened again, and she said, "Do you feel very bad?
Please tell me."

"Yes."

"Where? If you could just say what is wrong!"

"I don't know."

"Do you think any bones are broken?"

"I can't tell."

"But is it great pain anywhere? Your leg?"

"No—not pain—only—"

"If you would tell me just once! Only—what?"

"I don't know—" in the same dull undertone, as if he were scarcely
conscious of what he said.

"Is it sinking—faintness?"

"Yes."

"If you had a little water!—" and a craving look responded, but he
only whispered—

"No; don't move."

"No, I know I must not. Harvey, it is only faintness, nothing worse!"

For another thought had come, with a beat of anguish at her heart.
How if this were death? The ghastly pallor, the dim and half-shut
eyes, the panting breath, the feeble voice, these might mean the
worst! Julia had seen little of illness, and she knew nothing of how
death might look, but the terror assailed her.

"If I am killed, and you get through!" he had said. Those words
recurred now.

And she could not get to him; she might not stir to touch him; she was
debarred from seeking help. She had only to sit there, close at hand
yet parted, looking on at what he had to bear.

Again she spoke, because she could not endure the terrible silence and
her own helplessness, but there was no reply. Harvey did not seem to
hear.

"Take care that Hermione has her rights!" This command came up next.
One thought after another floated through Julia's mind, while her
whole attention seemed to be bent upon the present emergency and upon
her husband's condition.

Hermione's rights! But what rights? Harvey had plainly declared to his
wife that Hermione had no rights, that he was in no sense bound. What
did he mean by Hermione's "rights"? And how was Julia to reconcile his
two utterances?

"What doth the Lord require of thee, but to do justly, and to love
mercy, and to walk humbly with thy God?"

Julia's whole being cried out at this, "Have we 'done justly' towards
Hermione?" She did not say, "Has Harvey?" though in truth the
responsibility was his, not hers; but she linked herself with him,
she felt that she might perhaps have said more, have used stronger
influence, and tears came streaming at the thought. If Harvey were
in danger, if he were to die, and if indeed he had allowed himself
to do not justly, how should she ever forgive herself? She could not
get over those few strong words, "Take care that Hermione has her
rights!"

"Aunt Julia—why don't you tell Jesus?"

It was curious how this simple little question of Mittie's flashed
into Julia's mind. For she was so helpless, so direfully in need,
so terror-stricken with her own position and her husband's peril.
There seemed to be absolutely nothing that she could do. The one thing
which she might do she had scarcely remembered. Here it was, briefly
and childishly stated, but holding a mighty truth for all that.
Why should she not "tell Jesus"?

Julia did not hesitate. She bent her face into her hands, and sobbed
out a prayer. No words were audible, but the passionate appeal went up
through those heart-rending sobs.

"Julia!" The hollow voice startled her, "Don't cry. It's no use."

She dashed away her tears in a moment.

"Yea," she whispered.

"No signs of John?"

"I can't see him yet. If only—"

"Hush! listen!" Harvey spoke with a faint imperiousness. "If some one
doesn't come soon, I don't believe I can hold out."

Julia's lips whitened.

"Something is wrong—I don't know what. I feel as if—"

Another pause. Drops stood out like beads all over his brow.

"Harvey, you are faint. It is only faintness. If I could get you some
water."

"No, don't stir. This brute's hoofs would be the death of me—if—but I
feel—" and again there was a break. "Julia, if I don't get through—
mind—"

His voice sank, and he seemed to strive for speech in vain. Julia
could hardly bear up against the wave of terror and grief which
threatened to overwhelm her, yet she spoke at once in answer.

"Yes, I will—I will—indeed. I will not forget Hermione's rights."

The drooping eyelids half opened.

"How could you know? Who told it?"

"You did—you yourself, as we came down the hill."

"Ah, I forgot," and a gasp broke into the words. "Yes, twenty thousand
pounds. Mr. Selwyn knows. Julia, I think—I almost think I must
be—dying."

The eyes closed, and the breathing grew more feeble.

"Harvey! Harvey! Oh, what can I do?" sobbed Julia in agony. "Oh, this
is terrible."

And in her distress she did not see, any more than did her unconscious
husband, that John, with three stout labouring men, was hastening from
the corner to their help.



CHAPTER XXVI.

SENT FOR.

"MOTHER, shouldn't you think Uncle Harvey and Aunt Julia would soon
be at home?"

"Really I don't know. Yes, most likely. What are you after with my
work-basket?"

"I want to find some red silk. I'm making a pin-cushion for my
Marjory."

"Well, another time you can ask my leave first. I have no red silk,
so please stop all that fumbling."

Mittie desisted immediately, as she would not have done once upon
a time.

"I do wish I had some red silk. Mother, are there any shops in East
Bourne?"

"Of course there are—heaps."

"And can I get some red silk there?"

"Of course. What a silly question!"

"And can I send my pin-cushion to Marjory by post?"

"If you choose. What are you going to ask next, I wonder?"

"I do wish we weren't going to East Bourne, mother. I don't want to be
such a great way from my Marjory."

"Really, Mittie, you are crazy about her. I am perfectly sick of the
name. A good thing we are going, I say, if it is only to get some
of that nonsense out of your head."

Mittie promptly inquired, "What nonsense?"

"You know. The sort of talk you have favoured me with lately."

"Marjory teaches me, mother."

"Yes. I wish people would mind their own business, and leave other
folks alone."

"Marjory teaches me how to be good. Don't you like me to learn to be
good?"

An embarrassing question, rather. Mrs. Trevor evaded it.

"I like you to be sensible, of course, child."

"And not good too?"

"You are perfectly demented, Mittie. What makes you ask such
ridiculous questions? Yes, I like you to be good, but I don't want
you to be always chattering about it."

"My Marjory doesn't never chatter."

"There you go again! Always that perpetual 'my Marjory.' I hate to
have a person's name drummed into my ears. If you want to make me
detest her, you are setting to work in the right way. Miss Fitzalan
is all very well, but one may have too much of a good thing."

Mittie stood near the table, her little arms folded, and her drooping
face hidden by its cloud of fair hair. She made no answer. A touch
of compunction came over Mrs. Trevor.

"Well, I dare say I can find you some red silk after all, if it's
an affair of such immense importance. Not in my work-basket. Get me
that little Indian box from the side-table."

The child obeyed silently, keeping her face turned away.

"Here, you can fish out something from this tangle. I dare say it is
not more than two or three needles-full that you want, and Miss
Fitzalan will not be critical about the colours matching. Mittie,
you goose!" at the sound of a sob. "What on earth is the matter now?"

Mittie could not have explained. She did not herself know what made
the tears come so fast. It was only a child's nameless pain at hearing
hard words spoken against one whom she loved, but a child's pain may
be very keen while it lasts. Mrs. Trevor mentally resolved to pass
no strictures on Marjory Fitzalan in the future. She never could
endure to see Mittie cry.

"Do stop, child, pray! You'll make such an object of yourself. You are
quite welcome to think what you choose of Miss Fitzalan, if it makes
you happy. I am sure I don't care. I wish Julia and Harvey would come
home, for the afternoon is perfectly endless. It is a mercy we are
going away soon. I really think I should end by a fit of melancholy
madness if this sort of thing lasted much longer. Now, Mittie, I won't
have another tear. Just think what fun you are going to have down on
the shore at East Bourne, picking up shells and digging in the sand.
Yes, of course, there is sand—and shingles and rocks too."

This proved comforting, and Mittie was wiled out of her grief. Another
hour passed, and still the absentees appeared not. Mrs. Trevor grew
vexed, counting herself ill-used. But yet another hour went by before
Slade entered the drawing-room and stood within the door.

"Somebody wanting Mr. Dalrymple, did you say?" Mrs. Trevor asked,
waking up to a consciousness of his presence, and unaware that he had
not spoken. Her faculties had been buried for the last twenty minutes
in a yellow-backed novel. "Mr. Dalrymple is out still. I cannot
understand his being so long."

"No, ma'am. There has been an accident," Slade's suppressed voice
answered.

"An accident! Not to the dog-cart?"

"Yes, ma'am. It was not far from Captain Woodthorpe's, and Mr. and
Mrs. Dalrymple have gone there. John has returned with a message.
The horses ran away down a hill into a cart. Emperor is killed,
and Prince—"

"And—and—" Mrs. Trevor could hardly speak in her impatience at his
deliberate utterance. As if the horses mattered! She was angry at his
putting them first, yet she knew that Slade was only trying to break
his news gradually. Had he worse to tell?

"And my sister? And Mr. Dalrymple?"

"Mrs. Dalrymple was thrown out, ma'am; and at first she was not
supposed to be hurt at all, but that is found to be a mistake.
John does not know particulars. He was left behind when the horses
ran away; and when he got to the spot he found Mr. Dalrymple unable
to move, and Mrs. Dalrymple sitting on Prince's head to keep
him down."

Mrs. Trevor exclaimed at this, knowing Julia's timidity with horses,
"I always did say it was insane to keep such wild creatures," she
added, with the instinctive desire to blame somebody which belongs
to many people in trouble. "Mr. Dalrymple will believe me now! Is he
very much hurt?"

"I am not sure, ma'am. Not so bad as was first thought," Slade
answered dubiously. "I believe Mr. Dalrymple was very faint, and
there's two ribs broken. But he's not, so to speak, in danger, and
John's afraid as Mrs. Dalrymple is the worst. You see my mistress kept
up, ma'am, and wouldn't give in, and nobody suspected it till, all of
a sudden, she was took bad. She was so bad, Mrs. Ogilvie couldn't
leave her to write to you, and John's brought a message asking if you
could please go?"

[Illustration: Two of the men carried Harvey, while his wife walked by
his side.]

"Yes, of course. I must go at once. Call John, if you please. I should
like to speak to him. John does not know what is wrong with Mrs.
Dalrymple, I suppose?"

"He does not precisely, ma'am." Slade's formal voice was lowered.
"He believes it to be something internal—from what Mrs. Ogilvie said—
but the doctor was in hopes."

"Poor dear Julia!" and Mrs. Trevor's eyes were filled with genuine
tears. "Is John outside?"

She followed Slade to the door in her impatience. John appeared
quickly, and he made some material additions to Slade's abstract.
He described the accident more fully, with evident appreciation of his
young mistress's courage, and he showed some natural gratification
over his own foresight in having secured by the way three able-bodied
men to go on with him to a possible scene of disaster.

Mr. Dalrymple had looked "terrible bad," John said, on their first
arrival, and Mrs. Dalrymple, seated on Prince's head, not much better.
Mrs. Dalrymple had, however, declared herself unhurt and all attention
had been directed to Mr. Dalrymple and the horses. Emperor was found
to be dying, nearly dead, and Prince also a good deal injured.
Mr. Dalrymple appeared to suffer much from being moved, and having
to be carried more than two miles on a hastily-improvised stretcher.
One of the men stayed behind in charge of the horses, two of them
carried Harvey, while his wife walked by his side, and John hastened
on to give warning at the cottage of their approach. He was in hopes
of bringing the pony-carriage to meet Mrs. Dalrymple, but Captain
Woodthorpe had gone off for a drive, happily leaving Mrs. Ogilvie
at home. She immediately despatched the gardener in quest of medical
aid, and prepared for her visitors.

Ill as Mr. Dalrymple looked when he arrived, there could be no
question that his wife looked much the worst of the two. Everybody had
been startled by her appearance.

"The colour of a table-cloth, ma'am—only a sort of yaller too," John
graphically explained. Yet she had kept up, resolutely refusing to be
cared for, and bent upon doing everything for her husband. This lasted
until the doctor came. An examination of Mr. Dalrymple resulted in the
cheerful verdict, "Two ribs broken, but no danger!" and then in a
moment, almost without warning, Julia failed. John could not tell
particulars here. He only knew that Mr. and Mrs. Dalrymple were in
different rooms, that Mrs. Ogilvie could not leave Mrs. Dalrymple,
and that the doctor counted her state serious.

"Those horrible horses!" Mrs. Trevor reiterated, as a kind of vent
for her own distress. "I always did think something dreadful would
happen some day!" Then she inquired how she was to get to the cottage,
shivered at the notion of the Captain's pony-carriage which had
brought John, decided to put up at once small bag of requisites,
and asked where was Miss Rivers.

Slade believed that Miss Rivers had not returned from the village.

"As usual!" murmured Mrs. Trevor. "And what am I to do about the
child?"

She was assured that Mittie would be all right. Milton appeared on the
scene, promising to take Miss Mittie under her own wing. Also Miss
Rivers would see to everything.

"I hope to goodness she will!" sighed Mrs. Trevor, hastening towards
the stairs. "Oh, what a thing it is!"

Before leaving, she loaded Mittie with injunctions how to behave, and
how not to behave, the leading idea throughout being that she was
"not to bother" Hermione. Mittie listened with a scared face.

"No, mother. I won't bother cousin Hermione. I'll go to Marjory
for everything."

"Nonsense, child. I don't mean that, of course. Nothing would offend
Hermione more. But just keep out of her way as much as you can."

"Yes, mother. Must I keep out of everybody's way?" asked Mittie,
in a forlorn tone.

"Oh, if you are dull you can run and talk to Milton. I don't expect
to be away long."

"Will you come home to-morrow?" Mittie inquired.

"I don't know. It must depend on how your aunt is."

"John says Aunt Julia is so dreadful bad. He says perhaps she'll die."
Mittie's eyes were full of tears.

"John had no business to say anything of the sort to you. He is
a foolish fellow. You are not to listen to him, Mittie, or to talk
to the servants—except Milton and Slade. I don't believe Aunt Julia
is nearly so bad as John makes out. Mind you are a good child, and go
to bed early, and don't be dull. It won't last long." Mittie held up
her face for a kiss, trying to smile. She kept fairly bright until the
pony-chaise drove off, carrying her mother and John. Then Mittie's
self-command came to an end. She rushed away to a corner of her
mother's room, and sobbed out her little heart in a flood of lonely
tears.

But Hermione was not in the village, as Slade supposed.

She had gone that afternoon for a walk alone, towards the big house
and grounds, nearly two miles distant, where dwelt the Dalton family,
Mr. and Mrs. Dalton, and their one daughter, Anna.

She had not once seen the Daltons since that memorable afternoon when
Harvey had just returned from abroad, and the three had dropped in for
a long call. The Daltons were wealthy people. Mr. Dalton had made a
large fortune in business, and had therewith purchased the property
lying next to Westford, no long time back.

Hermione did not care much for these Daltons. She knew that her
grandfather had not liked them, and she knew also that Harvey was by
no means anxious for a closer acquaintance. There was a tinge of
commonness about their speech and their manners which grated on her,
so she could well understand Harvey's feeling; and they had few
redeeming qualities. Mr. Dalton was counted a hard landlord;
Mrs. Dalton was said to give herself airs; and Miss Dalton, though a
good woman, was an universally-acknowledged bore in society. Hermione,
however polite she might be to them in their presence, had fully
concurred in these criticisms.

It was not in the least necessary that she should undertake a four
miles' walk for the express purpose of a call on the Daltons. They had
left their cards, it was true, one day lately, when she was out, but
they would not expect to see her for a good while. Her sad loss was
still very recent, and during the life of Mr. Dalrymple calls between
Hermione and the Daltons had been carefully rendered few and far
between by his particular wish. There was no reason now for a change,
and six weeks later would have been soon enough.

Yet Hermione went, regardless of mud, saying nothing to anybody.

If she had mentioned her intention, Harvey would at once have proposed
driving round thither, that she and Julia might call together.
Hermione felt no doubt about this. However little Harvey might care
for the acquaintance, he was irreproachable in his gentlemanly
kindness to her where such matters were concerned. And she did not
wish to go with Julia. She was bent upon paying the call alone.

For the East Bourne question remained still open. Mr. Fitzalan had not
changed his mind; had not, as Hermione expected, offered after all to
take her in. She was very much hurt at what, in her heart, she called
"his unkindness;" so much so that for three whole days she had not
been to the Rectory at all.

June was passing, and, unless she meant to accompany the others,
something had to be arranged. Hermione was resolved against East
Bourne. She had said she would not go, and go she would not. The mere
fact of having once declared her will—even in a fit of passion—was
enough to make Hermione stick to her own declaration. The question of
right and wrong was subordinate to the question of having her own
way—of not being "beaten" by Mrs. Trevor.

Hermione did not see in herself the contemptibleness of this small
obstinacy—as she would have seen it in another.

She was seriously perplexed what to do. She had many acquaintances,
but not many real friends. Her aim had been, unconsciously, rather to
attract admiration than to win love; and the admiration had been hers,
but not always the love. Mr. Dalrymple had encouraged real intimacy
with very few families in the neighbourhood, and among these Hermione
could think of no one who, from one reason or another, would be just
then able to receive her.

The thought of the Daltons came up. As already said, Hermione cared
little for them. They did not suit her, and she knew they had not
suited her grandfather.

But she was bent upon some plan whereby the East Bourne trip might be
escaped. Anything rather than to have to give in. Hermione felt little
doubt of her own power to bring about an invitation to Dalton House,
if she so willed. The Daltons would be only too delighted to push
their acquaintance with the Dalrymples. As for what Harvey might
think—

"I cannot help that; I must act for myself!" Hermione said, as she set
off upon her lonely walk.



CHAPTER XXVII.

A PRIVATE ARRANGEMENT.

HERMIONE was shown into a lavishly-decorated drawing-room, which might
have been taken as a very symbol of City wealth set-down in a country
corner. She did not like the style of the thing, for her tastes had
been educated in chaste lines, and the superabundance of money-outlay,
witnessed to by every inch of the room, went against the grain with
her. Even where beauty existed, it was spoilt by ostentation.

The three Daltons, father, mother, and daughter, appeared in quick
succession, each more or less flurried, and all disposed to welcome
her with empressement. Mr. Dalton was stout and plain, Mrs. Dalton
plump and comely, Miss Dalton thin and excitable. They were charmed to
see Miss Rivers, but amazed to hear that she had come on foot. What a
pity that she had not driven! In her dear grandfather's time—but of
course things were different now! Everybody was talking of it. But
Miss Rivers would sit quiet and rest, and have a cup of tea presently;
and by-and-by they would drive her home themselves—delighted to do so!
No trouble at all to have the carriage out, but quite a pleasure—and
all those lazy horses in the stables wanted exercise. Positively Mr.
Dalton did not know how to give them enough.

"I assure you I prefer the walk," Hermione said somewhat distantly.
For although she had come to seek a favour, she did not wish to have
favours thrust upon her unsought; and it was too much to have these
people supposing that she had walked because she might not drive if
she chose. The slight figure straightened itself, and the fair cheek
flushed a little.

"Well, we will see—we will see!" Mrs. Dalton responded, nodding her
head. "Yes, you are a good walker, no doubt, my dear, but it begins
to get dusk early, you know, and you are much too young and pretty
to walk home alone after dusk. Is she not, Anna? Much too young and
pretty. And we see you so seldom, you are not going to hurry away now
you have come at last."

Hermione again could have resented the patronage of that "my dear,"
but taking offence at such trifles was hardly compatible with the aim
of her call. So she restrained herself.

It had not been her intention to remain long,—certainly not longer
than was needed for the object in hand. But that object seemed
for a while to elude her grasp. Every conceivable subject came
under discussion except the one which she wished to bring forward.
She did not wish the bringing forward to be too obvious an action
on her own part. She wanted it to come up naturally, and this it
refused to do.

Mrs. Dalton and her daughter were people who liked to air their ideas
before a good listener, and Hermione was a very good listener, for
whether interested or no she always looked interested. Mr. Dalton had
a way of appealing deferentially to ladies for their opinions on vexed
questions; and as he usually made their notions the text for a
supplementary address by himself, the process consumed a good deal
of time.

"I really must leave," Hermione said at length, seizing on a minute
break, and she sighed, but did not rise. "There is so much to be done,
in preparation for leaving home next week!" Hermione sighed again.

"Are you really going away? But, as I was telling you, Miss Rivers,
the article which my husband read to me—"

"Yes, we are leaving. It is a trial to me, of course," Hermione said,
with her gentle air of sadness, ignoring the elder lady's desire
to discuss the last Quarterly. "My cousins have decided to spend a few
weeks at East Bourne. But—"

"How delightful!" exclaimed Miss Dalton. "The very queen of
watering-places, as—Who was it that said so, mother?"

"But I—" persisted Hermione.

"Yes, indeed, a most charming place," added Mrs. Dalton, dropping the
Quarterly to pick up East Bourne. "A few breezes on Beachy Head will
soon bring a little more colour to these pale cheeks, my dear
Miss Rivers."

"But I do not—"

"And just the right time of year," said Miss Dalton. "Of course,
the season is in August. But our friend Lady Maria always says—
you remember, mother—she always says the very best time in East Bourne
is through the autumn, when the height of the season is over. That is
the season she prefers. So Miss Rivers is particularly fortunate to be
going just now. Lady Maria says it is often delightful there quite
on into November, and even December."

"But I am not sure—"

Hermione's pale cheeks were gaining a good deal of colour already,
with the impossibility of making herself heard. She grew so vexed
that tears actually rose to her eyes.

"Yes, yes, to be sure, a most enjoyable spot for young folks,"
Mr. Dalton broke in.

"If I were in spirits for it," Hermione murmured. She did not in the
least realise that there was anything untrue, anything of acting
in this. The words came naturally at the moment, and she believed that
she felt what she said. Hermione was not, strictly speaking,
in spirits to enjoy the proposed change. But her low spirits came
mainly from a different cause than that which she wished to be
understood.

The words were heard at last, and Hermione's three companions,
suddenly silenced, noted the tears filling her eyes. Glances of
meaning were exchanged.

"Yes, yes, to be sure," assented Mrs. Dalton. "To be sure, my dear;
we were forgetting—"

"A gay sea-side place—after what I have gone through so lately,"
Hermione almost whispered. "My cousins' wish—but—"

"So very thoughtless of Mrs. Dalrymple," Miss Dalton asserted, falling
in promptly with the little note of implied blame. "Young brides never
do think of anybody except themselves. But after all, must you go
at all? Why not stay quietly in Westford? It really is very soon
to have to turn out, and be among a lot of strangers. Why not just
stop behind?"

"I did think of that—but—the house is to be closed and left in charge
of servants," Hermione faltered. "And the friends with whom I hoped
to stay are—unfortunately—cannot have me just then."

Was this absolute truth Hermione's conscience gave her a sharp twinge.
But the others suspected nothing. She spoke so quietly and simply,
with no appearance of expecting anything from them. A little sigh came
once more, and then she added—

"But it cannot be helped. One must make the best of things. Only,
of course, it is a change."

Hermione had won her will at last. Three sentences broke in quick
succession from her sympathising hearers.

"Mother, don't you think you could persuade Miss Rivers—?"

"My dear, it's plain enough what you've got to do! You just come
and stay here while your cousins are away!"

"Yes, yes; that's it, Miss Rivers. You make our house your home.
Let other folks go their own way. We'll take you in, and count it
an honour; and you shall be as quiet as you like—not see a single
person, if you don't feel yourself disposed."

"Thank you!" Hermione answered faintly, glancing from one to another,
"But, indeed—"

A sudden doubt swept through her mind. Would this plan be really
better than the other? Apart from Mrs. Trevor, might not East Bourne
be the pleasanter alternative?

Only it could not be apart from Mrs. Trevor. If she went to East
Bourne, Mrs. Trevor would have triumphed. That decided Hermione.

"Oh, we won't hear any 'but'! You must come, you positively must,"
Mrs. Dalton was declaring. "Just to be at home, my dear, for as long
as you like, and to do exactly whatever you choose."

It was very kind. Hermione could not but be sensible of the kindness,
even while she shrank from the thought of the companionship. There
seemed, however, to be no other alternative. It had come to East
Bourne or the Daltons! And since the former meant the yielding of her
own will, and the chance of a triumphant glance from Mrs. Trevor,
Hermione chose the latter.

In ten minutes all was settled, but Hermione could not get away then.
Mrs. Dalton refused to listen to any suggestion about departure.
Hermione was to stay till five o'clock tea; and then she had to see
this, to hear that, to discuss the other, until it was too late for
her to think of walking home alone. The sense of obligation put her
doubly into their power, and there was not among the Daltons that
delicacy of feeling which would have made them fall in at once with
her evident wish to leave.

The afternoon at last was gone, and Hermione found herself driving
homeward in the Daltons' carriage, with Miss Dalton by her side.
Miss Dalton talked ceaselessly, and Hermione listened, putting in a
word now and then. Not many such words were requisite. A Dalton could
always flow on indefinitely, with small exterior help, and Mr. Dalton
alone of the three ever appealed to others for their opinions.

Poor Hermione! It was not interesting talk. She was getting very tired
of it already, after only two or three hours of intercourse. How would
she feel after weeks of intercourse?

But she had taken her deliberate choice.



When Hermione came in at the front door, Mittie met her, with scared
look and tear-swollen eyes.

"O cousin Hermione! have you heard?"

Hermione had found the front door on the latch—unwontedly late—and had
entered without ringing, after an effusive farewell from Miss Dalton.
The effusiveness vexed Hermione, though she did her best to conceal
vexation and to respond only with a gentle dignity. "For of course
it is most kind of them," Hermione thought— "most kind, and I am
really grateful. But I do not intend to be drawn into an intimacy.
I see no need for that. We shall continue on pleasant terms—nothing
beyond."

After which her glance fell upon Mittie's troubled face, and the
hall-sobbing question reached her— "O cousin Hermione, have you
heard?"

"Heard what?"

"About—about Aunt Julia and Uncle Harvey?"

"I don't understand. What have they done?"

"The horses ran away, and the carriage is all smashed, and—and—poor
Emperor is dead," sobbed Mittie. "And mother has gone off to Aunt
Julia. And Marjory came here, and stayed with me ever so long—she did,
cousin Hermione—and you were so dreadfully late, she couldn't wait any
longer. And Aunt Julia is very bad, and Uncle Harvey is hurt too."

Hermione stood gravely looking down on the child with an air of
grieved concern, exactly the right air for the occasion. Nobody would
have guessed the instant thought which shot through her mind, that
East Bourne would now be given up, and there would be no need for her
to go to the Daltons'. Hermione would have been the last to confess
the thought; she scarcely allowed its existence even to herself.

"Who brought the news, Mittie?"

"John did. He came back from Captain Woodthorpe's."

"Are they there—at Captain Woodthorpe's?"

Mittie was crying too bitterly to respond further than by a nod.
Hermione led her to the drawing-room, where she rang for Slade.
The whole tale was then told her.

"And you understood that Mrs. Dalrymple was in danger?" Hermione said
at length. It seemed very terrible. Only a few hours earlier in full
health, with every prospect of a long life, and now—!

"I did, Miss," Slade answered solemnly. "John was under that
impression."

"Is John here now?"

"He drove back with Mrs. Trevor to see the horses."

"And Mr. Pennant—you say that Mr. Pennant was to follow."

"Mr. Pennant was absent on his rounds, Miss, but Mrs. Pennant
undertook that Mr. Pennant would set off immediately on his return.
He did return about an hour later, and when he left, Mr. Fitzalan went
also."

"I must know when Mr. Pennant and Mr. Fitzalan come back," said
Hermione. "Send some one to the Rectory to wait. Mr. Fitzalan may come
here, but if he does not I should like a message."

She had to wait long for news. Mittie went to bed, vainly imploring
to sit up longer. Hermione had her own ideas of discipline for
children, and she counted this no bad opportunity for counteracting
in some small degree the mother's spoiling method. So Mittie
disappeared, sobbing in a heart-broken style, and Hermione sat alone
with a book, keeping anxious watch.

Hermione really was very much grieved and shocked, though not to any
crushing extent. Such an accident happening to even a mere
acquaintance would come as a blow, and Hermione felt it quite as a
blow. She could not settle down to her book in any comfort. Harvey had
shown her invariable kindness, and Julia had almost succeeded in
winning her affection. "Poor Julia!" Hermione said repeatedly, with a
little sigh of commiseration. Perhaps, as she sighed, the recollection
would dart into her mind, "Now I need not go to the Daltons'!"
followed by a regretful wish, "If only I had waited one more day!"
But she did her best to smother down these suggestions, and only to
let herself think pityingly of "Poor Julia and Harvey!"

The announcement, "Mr. Fitzalan!" came at length abruptly. Hermione
sprang up, greeting him with outstretched hand.

"Oh, I am so glad! You have been to Captain Woodthorpe's, have you
not? How are they both? Where is Mr. Pennant?"

"He will not return till morning," Mr. Fitzalan answered.

Hermione's face fell. "Are things so serious? Is it—Julia?"

"Yes. Mr. Dalrymple is in no danger, though much hurt."

"And they thought Julia was not hurt at all at first, Slade tells me.
Do sit down, Mr. Fitzalan!" for he stood facing her, with his hand
on the back of a chair.

"She did not appear to be."

"Was it true that she walked over two miles? Could she?"

"She did. It was wrong, of course; but till they had gone some
distance she was not aware of her own state, and then she struggled
on for Mr. Dalrymple's sake. That made matters much worse. She ought
to have given in at once. They seem all to have been under the
impression that Mr. Dalrymple was much more hurt than has proved to be
the case."

"And Julia gave in—when?"

"When the doctor pronounced him to be in no danger."

"Slade spoke of a fainting fit."

"Yes—the result of over-exertion, I suppose—and there are internal
injuries. They have not dared to move her from the sofa where she was
first carried. Captain Woodthorpe's doctor was obliged to leave, and
Pennant said he would remain till morning."

"You did not see Julia?"

"For three minutes I did. It was her wish that I should pray. Talking
was not allowed."

"And she did not say anything? Poor Julia! How did she look?"

"Very ill, and very calm. Yes, she whispered a few words. She said,
'My love to Hermione. Tell her—all is peace.'"

Mr. Fitzalan's eyes were moist. Hermione only said, "I am glad. But I
should not have expected—"

"Expected what?"

"That Julia—I have never fancied that Julia had much real religion."

"Our fancies about one and another are very apt to be mistaken."

"But—one may sometimes judge—" began Hermione.

"No, that we have not to do. We may judge lines of conduct, but we may
not judge individuals. Happily the decision on that head does not rest
with us. If it did, we should too often in our conceit shut out those
who may be nearer Christ than we are ourselves."



CHAPTER XXVIII.

JULIA'S COGITATIONS.

JULIA was very ill, and she knew it, and she had no fear. It seemed
wonderful. For years she had dreaded the end of life, had shrunk from
the thought of death. And now suddenly it might be close at hand,
yet she was not terrified.

It had not occurred to her that while she, the wandering sheep, sought
the Shepherd, the Shepherd also sought her. And not till the moment
of dire peril and need came did she realise that He had found her,
that she was actually safe in His keeping, that under the shadow of
His Hand no harm could arrive. She had not known Him well hitherto,
but knowledge grew fast in the hours of silent suffering, when she had
just to lie and wait for what He might will to do to her.

Julia said little through those days of weakness. Much talk was
forbidden and impossible. If it had not been, her sense of peace was
too new for careless handling. She wanted to learn, not to teach.
The peace was apparent, however, in her quiet face, in the absence
of all murmurs. From time to time she asked anxiously after her
husband, and smiled to hear that he was doing well. For herself,
she wished to get better, but there were no impatient longings.

Then the tide turned, and Julia knew that she was on the highroad
to recovery.

A certain reaction followed, not in actual loss of peace, for that
remained, but in thronging recollections and conjectures. The burdens
of common life had to be taken up once more, or they would have to be
soon. Julia could not put them aside till the necessary moment:
Her very lack of physical power made control of thought the more
difficult.

She could not get Hermione out of her head, and the remembrance of her
husband's words, at the moment of extreme peril, was incessantly
present.

What where Hermione's rights?

Did Harvey know something more than she knew? If so—what did he know?—
and what would he do?

What had he meant her to do if his life had been taken? To give
Hermione twenty thousand pounds? Was that it? Had Hermione a right
to so much?

Mr. Selwyn knew! Then of course there was some additional fact hidden
from herself. She would have had to appeal to Mr. Selwyn.

Would have had—if Harvey had died, and if she had been left a lonely
widow! Julia shuddered at the thought!

That great sorrow had not come. She and Harvey were spared each to the
other.

But Hermione's "rights" claimed attention still from Harvey and Julia
together.

What "rights" again? What had Harvey meant?

Something precise and definite surely? Something beyond the general
sense that Hermione ought not to have been left unprovided for.

Things might be easily set straight. Only, since Harvey felt so
strongly on the subject, why had he not taken action sooner?

Thus round and round on one pivot Julia's mind circled, sometimes for
hours together, as she lay recovering.

But Julia would not breathe a word of all this to any human being.
She had no notion of betraying an iota of her husband's confidence.
What she had to say would be said to himself, not to Mrs. Ogilvie
or Mr. Fitzalan, least of all to Francesca.

"How soon are we to be allowed to see one another?" she often asked,
and Mrs. Ogilvie always answered, "Before long, I hope." Julia knew
that Harvey might be expected to come to her before she would be
allowed to go to him. She did not know that he already had leave,
if he could or would arouse himself to make the effort.

Somehow Harvey seemed very inert, very averse to the said effort.
He was so affectionate a husband, so full of solicitude about Julia's
state, that those around were puzzled. It would have seemed to them
more natural if he had been in a hurry to go to Julia before
permission was given, than that he should fail to use the permission
when it came. His reluctance was ascribed purely to physical weakness,
still it was looked upon as odd.

Nobody knew what had passed between him and Julia just before the
accident. Harvey forgot it himself for a short time, but after a few
days the whole came back vividly.

Came back, yet with a difference. He was not disposed now to view
matters precisely as he had viewed them from the standpoint of
immediate danger to life. It is one thing to be willing to give up
twenty thousand pounds or so, if one does not expect to have any
further use for the money. It is quite another thing to give up the
same, if one expects to feel the loss permanently through thirty
or forty or more years of earthly existence.

Somehow, too, that old simple question of right and wrong is apt
to assume new aspects when looked upon from the bank of a certain dark
river, into which one may have immediately to plunge. Right is
unequivocal right, and wrong is unequivocal wrong, seen thus. But when
a man leaves the said river behind, and gets back into the foggy
atmosphere of common life, right and wrong sometimes assume very misty
shapes, and so many matters of will and inclination are involved that
the question loses a good deal of its simplicity. The question is of
course the same, and the answer must be the same, but the mode of
viewing it is different.

Not that approaching death necessarily makes a coward of a man, but it
clears his eyesight. We are all much given to thinking that life will
last indefinitely, and that what is crooked will somehow manage to get
straight before the end. Many a deed is done in broad earthly
daylight, quite placidly and with scarcely a whisper from conscience,
which would not pass muster for an instant if the doer stood
face to face with the last enemy.

This was Harvey's experience. As Prince and Emperor rushed madly down
the hill, Harvey had very clear views indeed of right and wrong
in connection with a certain vexed point. There was no hesitation
at all in his mind just then as to what might or might not be
Hermione's claims upon himself. The legal aspect of the matter slipped
out of his thoughts altogether, as not worth consideration. The great
moral question of right and wrong overshadowed all else.

But now Harvey was back in the fogs again. He remembered what he had
felt, and he told himself that it was absurd—extravagant—mere
over-excitement, and so on.

He would have given a good deal for power to blot out those short
utterances to his wife. Harvey could not resist a consciousness that
Julia's conscience might prove less malleable than his own—not that
his own was quite so submissive as he could have wished. But Julia—
why, Julia was a woman, more than that, a mere girl. Women never would
hear reason, if they took up a certain notion on any subject. It was
always with them a matter of feeling, not of logic. And as for Julia,
she knew about as much of business and money affairs as little Mittie.

It was a marvel to Harvey how he could have done so unadvised a thing
as to speak out to Julia at all. Dear good creature she was, and the
best of wives, but Harvey feared she might give him no end of trouble
here. The decision of course rested with him, and he was not afraid
that she would let out anything to anybody else; still he did not wish
to lower himself in her eyes. He would have to discuss the whole
question with her; more than this, he would undoubtedly have to settle
some amount on Hermione without further delay, as the best hope
of pacifying Julia.

Then the old bother would have to be met and answered. How much was
the least that would do? How little was the most he must part with?

If only he had kept his own counsel, and said nothing! After all,
he and Julia had both come through the peril with only passing hurts.
From his present position of safety he could hardly remise how dire
the peril had been. It mystified him that for a short space he should
have viewed things so differently. For past scenes soon lose their
vividness; and earthly life seemed now so full of reality, so likely
to go on for another half-century or thereabouts, that Harvey was
little disposed to look further ahead. He wanted to get along
comfortably in this present life; and to give up twenty thousand
pounds, or even half of twenty thousand pounds, would not be
comfortable.

"We should have to consider every sixpence before spending it. And as
for keeping hunters! But there could not be a more extravagant idea!
Absurd! The estate simply could not stand it. I shall have to explain
all this to Julia."

Explaining means trouble, however, and Harvey hated trouble. So, much
as he really wished to see Julia again, he was on the whole languidly
disposed to plead weakness, and to defer the first interview.



CHAPTER XXIX.

WHAT TO THINK OF IT.

MRS. TREVOR was still at the cottage, joint-nurse with Mrs. Ogilvie
to the two invalids. It was the natural thing that she should be
there, helping to care for her own sister. But Mrs. Trevor soon
grew heartily weary of that lonely dwelling. To a genuine lover
of chimney-pots, absolute country is a bore.

She made no secret of the fact with her brother-in-law. Mrs. Trevor
could not forgive Harvey for the accident which had deprived her of
East Bourne delights, and had condemned her to this dismal solitude.
So far as practical nursing was concerned she did her duty, no doubt,
but Harvey had reached a stage which called rather for amusement than
for nursing, and here Mrs. Trevor failed. She was much too dull
herself to amuse any one else. Besides, the whole catastrophe was
Harvey's own fault. If he had not chosen to keep such horses, the
accident need never have happened. Mrs. Trevor took care to let Harvey
know what she thought.

"For my part, I think the sooner we get back to Westford the better,"
she declared one day. "I can't see why you should not go at once.
Mr. Pennant says you could bear the drive. There is only the question
of Julia, but she would be all right here with Mrs. Ogilvie, and she
could follow a few days later. It really is too bad to burden Captain
Woodthorpe longer than need be with such a posse of us. And there is
poor unfortunate Mittie in a state of utter dismal; left to Hermione's
mercies. I'm in constant terror of something happening to the child.
Her lessons, too; she is just running wild all this time." The amount
of teaching bestowed upon Mittie by Mrs. Trevor was minute in amount,
but the argument served a purpose at this moment.

"Besides," Mrs. Trevor went on, "if you can stand this place much
longer, I can only say that I can't. Westford is bad enough, but here
we are in a perfect Arabia Deserta. A wheelbarrow going by makes as
much stir in one's mind as the explosion of a powder magazine would
in London. Now, do agree with me, there's a sensible man. Of course,
if you go home, I must too, if only to look after you. Mrs. Ogilvie
and I have talked over the plan, and she is quite willing 'when the
right time comes.' It's my opinion that the right time has come."

"But I have not seen Julia yet," objected Harvey.

"Well, you can see her any time. There's no difficulty. Of course
you feel weak still, but it's no such tremendous exertion, if you
would make up your mind to it."

Harvey looked listlessly unwilling.

"Oh, I know. You men always think yourselves desperate if anything
is wrong with you. But, really now, you might. And I believe the
change to Westford would do you all the good in the world. Then the
next thing will be to go on to East Bourne."

"It will be getting too late."

"Too late? Nonsense! That's the mistake people make. East Bourne
is like Brighton, at its best in the autumn and early winter. Not that
I've the least objection to going to Brighton, if you choose. That has
been my wish all along, for the bigger the town, the better for me.
I've had enough of grass and trees lately to last me all my life;
and there are trees and grass in East Bourne, but one hasn't much
chance of them in Brighton. However, it doesn't matter—either will do.
Just imagine that girl settling to stay with the Daltons while we are
away!"

"Hermione? No!" Harvey said, starting.

"She did! I have heard nothing from herself, of course, but it came
round to me. I dare say the arrangement will hold good for the future.
And she knows them to be people whom you can't endure, not to speak
of her old grandfather's dislike to them. But that is Hermione Rivers
all over! She is equal to anything, if it is a question of having
her own will. I think she wants looking after just as much as Mittie.
Now, what do you think? Home the day after to-morrow?"

Harvey was not unwilling. He did not care for his present
surroundings, he had grown tired of the Captain, and he was heartily
weary of an invalid life, though lacking energy to get out of it
even as far as he might. Nothing pleased him that any body did, and no
suggestions were to his mind. Mr. Pennant privately decided that
"something was weighing upon" Mr. Dalrymple, and Mrs. Trevor,
not privately, declared him to be "fearfully cross."

She had her way, however. Going home in two days became a settled
plan, and on the morning of the last day, an hour or two before
starting, Harvey saw Julia.

The interview came about suddenly so far as she was concerned.
Till that morning she had not been told of this new arrangement.
It was something of a shock to find that Harvey was willing to go
and to leave her behind, yet this she knew to be unreasonable, and she
controlled herself resolutely. "I shall be able to go too—soon!"
she said in a wistful tone; and when Harvey came in, walking more
invalidishly than was quite needful, she met him with the peaceful
smile which had of late characterised her.

He was aware of a difference which he could not have defined, which he
did not try to define. His one wish was to get through the interview
without the remotest allusion to Hermione, and the moment he came in
he saw "Hermione" written in Julia's eyes.

Mrs. Ogilvie was working in the room beside Julia's sofa, and he said
"Don't go!" most earnestly. But Mrs. Ogilvie rose at once. "Yes, you
must take this chair," she said. "I have promised ten minutes to Mrs.
Dalrymple—not more, I think."

Harvey could have dispensed with the ten minutes, but he had no
choice. "And you are better, Julia? Very thin, though," he said
kindly. "How naughty you were to take that long walk, when you ought
to have kept still! Another time I shall not trust your report
of yourself. It is provoking that you cannot come home yet, still I
hope it will be only a week or so. As Francesca says, we ought not all
to remain here longer than can be helped. Captain Woodthorpe will be
glad to have his house quiet."

He wanted to get through the ten minutes with nothing more than
chit-chat. Julia submitted for two or three minutes, answering
questions as to herself, and asking how he was. Then, putting both her
hands on one of his, and looking into his face with earnest eyes,
she broke into another question.

"Harvey—can you guess how much I have thought of something you said
to me just before it happened?"

"It—" the accident, of course. No need to ask. But this had come
even sooner than Harvey expected, and he wanted time. "It?" he said
inquiringly. "Oh—ah—yes, the smash, you mean. Poor Emperor! It is a
serious loss. I never had a better horse. And Prince will never be
worth anything again. I shall have to get rid of him."

"But, Harvey, about Hermione?"

"Well?" he said irritably.

"You know what you told me. I have been so longing to ask more.
Did you really mean what you said about Mr. Selwyn, and twenty
thousand pounds?"

She remembered the whole, then! He was much annoyed, for he had hoped
that her recollections might at least be indistinct.

"My dear, I really cannot be responsible for any nonsense I may have
talked at such a moment."

"Nonsense!" she repeated.

"Yes, certainly; one is apt to get off one's balance, and to say
foolish things—things which one would not say in a calmer mood.
It was exciting, of course. You felt that yourself?"

"But I am not jesting," she said gently, tears filling her eyes.
"It was real, you know, not mere nonsense or foolishness. You said
to me so plainly—don't you remember?—that if anything happened to you
I was to be sure and let Hermione have her rights. What are Hermione's
rights?"

"She has none. If I had not been upset and off my balance, I should
not have made use of so aboard an expression."

"You did not think it absurd then!" she said in a low voice.

"No. It was a moment of agitation. The expression is none the less
absurd. Hermione has no legal claim upon me whatever. Of course there
is the question whether, as a mere matter of kindness—as a matter
perhaps of what may have been my uncle's intention—whether it would be
well to settle upon her a small sum. I am quite prepared to do what
seems right. We will consider it together by-and-by. Not to-day,
however."

"Ought such things to be put off?" asked Julia. "Harvey, please answer
one question. Does Mr. Selwyn know what your uncle intended to do
for Hermione?"

"If he does, my uncle's wishes are not binding on me. My position
is altogether different from his."

"But—" and she looked at him with sorrowful eyes. "I am so
disappointed," she breathed.

"There is no need for any kind of disappointment. Hermione shall have
whatever is her due. Her due as a matter of kindness, I mean. That is
the word I ought to have used. She simply has no rights."

The distinction seemed to Julia to be void of difference.

"Will you not consult Mr. Selwyn?" she asked with eagerness, as the
idea came. "He is a very dependable man, is he not? I have heard you
say so."

"Quite dependable, on any point of law. But this is no legal question,
my dear. I am legally free. All I have to do is to act a brother's
part to Hermione—which does not mean that I am to impoverish
the estate."

"Would twenty thousand pounds impoverish the estate?"

"Given away in the lump? Yes, certainly."

"And yet, yet you said that. You meant it at the moment, did you not?"
she inquired gravely. "There is one thing you have not answered, and I
want so much to know. Will you not, please, tell me—does Mr. Selwyn
know exactly what Mr. Dalrymple intended to do for Hermione? Did Mr.
Dalrymple intend to leave Hermione twenty thousand pounds?"

Harvey was on the verge of being very angry. He could have been so.
Julia's persistency was most amazing. If she had not looked so thin
and changed, and if this had not been his first glimpse of her,
he would have got up and walked out of the room. Somehow he could not
resolve on this step, neither did he dare to agitate her by any marked
show of displeasure.

"My dear, do you know that you are meddling in business matters?
Women know nothing about business."

"Perhaps not. Still, you will tell me," she pleaded. "Did Mr.
Dalrymple intend that?"

"He wrote a note to Mr. Selwyn just before his death, stating some
such intention. It was merely a passing fancy. The truth is, he had
been a good deal agitated,—altogether upset."

"What about?"

"About my marriage, if you will have it. He was in a weakened state
already, and I have not the slightest doubt that the agitation
affected his brain." Harvey did not add that, whatever might be
thought about that particular note, and the particular sum mentioned
therein, no possible doubt existed as to Mr. Dalrymple's fixed
intention to provide amply for his granddaughter.

"Why should he have minded your marrying so much?"

"He had had a dream for years that I should marry Hermione.
Most absurd and impossible, but that was partly my reason for staying
so long abroad. I foresaw a collision, and I wished to avoid it.
Mind, all this is in confidence. Hermione knows nothing of her
grandfather's fancy, and she must not know. When he found that I was
actually married, and that his favourite idea could never come
to pass, he was—well, certainly much vexed and very much over-excited.
The news had the effect upon him of a shock. If I could have foretold
this, I should have broken it more cautiously. He wrote to Mr. Selwyn,
under the moment's impulse, speaking of a twenty thousand pound
settlement upon Hermione. Highly ridiculous, as he would have known
himself in cooler moments if he had lived."

"I thought everything was entailed."

"The landed property, not the money property. He had, I suppose,
as much as that at his disposal. You see you do not understand these
things, Julia. It is much better not to try. The last thing the poor
old gentleman would really have wished would have been to wreck
the property. You may depend upon me to do what is right
for Hermione."

"To do justly!" she said in a low tone.

"Yes, certainly—I hope so."

Then Mrs. Ogilvie came in, and no more could be said. Julia did not
look satisfied, however. Tears were again in her eyes when Harvey
bade her good-bye.

But if she was not satisfied, neither was he. He felt that his
arguments had not been conclusive, and he knew that Julia was not
convinced. Worse than this, he was not convinced himself. Say what
he would, he could not lay the matter to sleep. Hermione's claim—
Hermione's due—call it what he might, rose perpetually before him,
overshadowing his peace. The talk with Julia had only weakened his own
side of the question. He could not forget how things had looked
to him, seen in the scathing blaze of desperate peril.

Legally, of course, it was a very simple matter. Legally he was not
bound. Nobody could call him bound. All Mr. Dalrymple's property had
descended to him. All the property was his. Hermione could not legally
claim from him a single penny as her due.

But there was another side of the question. How might it be in the
sight of God?



Harvey reached his own room tired out with the short discussion,
and not at all disposed for the further exertion of a drive. Francesca
half-scolded, half-coaxed him into a different mood, but the drive had
to be deferred till nearly dark, and she could not cheer him up.
He sat long in moody silence, going over the things Julia had said,
and the things he had said in answer, till his head ached with the
strain.



CHAPTER XXX.

FROM MISS DALTON.

"COUSIN HERMIONE, what time will mother and Uncle Harvey come home?"

Hermione was writing letters at a davenport, when the little voice
timidly invaded her absorption. Somehow Mittie had grown timid lately.
She always had a sense of being "in the way" with Hermione.

"I don't know exactly. You can ask Milton."

"I did ask Milton, and she thought it would be rather early. But I
don't know what 'rather early' means; and she's so busy, she says
she can't be bothered. May I get some flowers for mother's room out of
the conservatory?"

"No, certainly not," Hermione answered. "You will spoil the whole look
of things."

"But I do want it so much," sighed Mittie.

Hermione wrote on, unheeding.

"Then if I mustn't get any flowers out of the conservatory, I think
I'll try to find some pretty leaves in the fields," murmured Mittie.
"I'm sure mother would like them. If Marjory wasn't away all to-day,
I'd ask her for some. But I dare say some nice red and yellow leaves
would do. Do you think mother won't come for half-an-hour, cousin
Hermione? Because I don't want to be out when she comes?"

Hermione looked up vacantly.

"Half-an-hour? No, I dare say not! Do run away, child. I am busy,
and I cannot attend to you just now."

Mittie stole off without another word, and Hermione finished her
letter, having no further interruptions. She closed, addressed,
and stamped it. Then leaning back with a grave and worried air,
Hermione drew from her pocket the scrawled note which she had received
from Mrs. Trevor the day before. It was as follows:—

"BRIERLY COTTAGE."

"DEAR HERMIONE,—Harvey has decided to go home to-morrow,
as he is quite equal to the drive; and I shall come also.
Julia will have to wait, probably for another week—
not longer, we hope."

"I don't suppose we shall get to East Bourne for another
fortnight."

"Harvey wishes the brougham to be here before three
o'clock, as he would like to start early.—Yours
sincerely,          F. TREVOR."

"What made her say that about East Bourne?" murmured Hermione. "It was
unnecessary. They will not get off in a fortnight. If Julia cannot
stand this short drive for another week, she will not be fit for a
long railway journey only one week later. But Mrs. Trevor cannot rest
without making me feel her power. That is to say, her power over
Harvey and Julia. How Harvey can be so weak is astonishing. She has
no power over me. When they go to Eastbourne I will go to the Daltons.
Not for enjoyment, certainly! It is not a friendship I would
choose. But if the Fitzalans fail me, and if I am driven to it
by Mrs. Trevor—"

Hermione's fair brow was contracted, and a flush rose in her cheeks.

"Anything rather than to be under Mrs. Trevor's power! Right and
wrong! I do not see that I should be wrong." This was in answer to a
distinct whisper of remonstrance from within. "I am not bound to go
to East Bourne."

Then it struck her, with a passing sense of compunction, that she
might after all have answered Mittie's question if she had taken the
trouble to look at Mrs. Trevor's note.

"That child leaves one no peace!" was the self-excusing comment.
"The brougham to be there before three; yes, of course, that was what
I told Slade. But I did not remember at the moment. One cannot always
remember. Three o'clock! They ought to be here by four."

The clock struck four as if in response, and Slade came in with the
letters, three for Hermione.

"Thanks!" Hermione said, with the gracious manner she always put on
towards the servants. "I suppose Mrs. Trevor and Mr. Dalrymple will
arrive directly. Better have tea up as soon as they come. I will ring
when I want lights. Do you know where Miss Mittie is?"

Slade did not know. Hermione went to her letters, without troubling
herself to inquire further, and Slade disappeared.

Two were lengthy epistles from distant friends. Hermione went through
them sheet by sheet in leisurely style, paying small heed to the
flight of time. Then she opened the third, finding, to her surprise,
that it was from Miss Dalton. What could Miss Dalton have to say?

"She need not suppose that I am going to get into a correspondence!"
thought Hermione, with a touch of something like resentment.

But the letter had to be read. It covered two sheets, and the writing
was not peculiarly legible. For a while Miss Dalton appeared to have
nothing particular to say. There was a good deal of chit-chat about
her own doings, about the Parish and about the neighbourhood, and
there was a certain amount of sympathetic gush about Hermione and
Hermione's trials. Miss Dalton was past girlhood, but not past girlish
gush. She seemed to be eagerly expectant of Hermione's visit, when
"the rest of them," as she tersely expressed it, should be gone
to East Bourne.

So far the letter was only commonplace and wearisome. On the second
page of the second sheet, however, Hermione came upon something
unexpected.



"I've only just come back from a week in London, and only think—
one evening I met at dinner a very old friend of your dear
grandfather's. His name is Ogilvie—Mr. Ogilvie—and I believe he is
some sort of relation of the Mrs. Ogilvie at Brierly Cottage; not that
I know Mrs. Ogilvie, for I never even met her, but just now,
of course, her name has come up in connection with all of you.
Mr. Ogilvie said something about a 'niece by marriage' living near
Westford. But we did not talk of her; we talked about you. He seems
a very frank kind old gentleman, and he said you were the prettiest
and sweetest child he had ever seen, about six or seven years ago."

"Then he said how he regretted hearing of the death of his dear old
friend, Mr. Dalrymple, and how he hoped you had been left properly
provided for. I hope you will not think it very interfering of me
to say all this, but really I think you ought to know exactly what
passed. I said I was afraid things were not at all as they ought
to be; and he said he was afraid they were not either; for the fact
was, he had received a letter from old Mr. Dalrymple, written just
before his death, speaking of what he meant to do for you. Mr. Ogilvie
was almost sure from the date of the letter, and the date
of Mr. Dalrymple's death given in the papers, that very little could
have been done."

"I said that I thought he really ought to make Mr. Dalrymple's letter
known for your sake, and he said he would be very willing to do what
was right. He had kept the letter, as being the last written by his
old friend. Of course he had not got it with him that evening, but he
quoted it from memory. He said it was written in a scrawled weak way,
not like Mr. Dalrymple's usual hand, and it spoke of the writer
feeling very unwell. Then the letter went on something like this,
'You will remember my sweet grandchild, Hermione Rivers. She is
lovelier than ever. I can feel no real fear about her future—so
attractive as she is, so sure to make friends wherever she goes. But I
have to provide for her future. The Westford estate is entailed.
I have this morning resolved to leave ten thousand pounds to her!'"

"Now, my dear Miss Rivers, you see!! You see what ought to be yours.
The letter was written on the Saturday, only two days before
Mr. Dalrymple's death, so, of course, nothing was or could be done.
And you are actually defrauded of this ten thousand pounds! Whatever
you have of your own, this ten thousand pounds ought to be yours also.
My father and my mother and myself feel most strongly on the subject,
I assure you. We feel that it ought to be made known. We feel that if
Mr. Dalrymple is made acquainted with his uncle's intention, and if
pressure is brought to bear upon him, he surely cannot—as a man
of honourable sentiments—he surely could not refuse to carry out what
his uncle would have done had he lived long enough."



Hermione read so far, and neglected the effusive wind-up. She sat
long, still as an image, lost in thought. The room grew darker,
but she did not notice it. Her whole mind was bent upon this
information which had so strangely come.

Ten thousand pounds! That would mean complete independence! It would
mean being able to go where she would, to live with whom she chose.
It would mean freedom from control, from Harvey, from Mrs. Trevor!

Mr. Dalrymple had fully intended this sum to be hers. He had that
morning resolved it—only that last morning! Extraordinary! Why had he
come to no such resolution earlier?

Hermione could not solve the puzzle. It was only another form of the
old perplexity—why he had let all those years go by, and had made
no provision in them for his darling?

She was more struck with another aspect of the matter, with the simple
fact that so soon as he had come to a resolution to act, death had
intervened, and the resolve could not be carried out.

With all Hermione's faults, she had been trained up into a very simple
and child-like belief in God's overruling and absolute power. And this
seemed to her very strikingly, very forcibly, like His interposition.
Mr. Dalrymple had willed to leave her ten thousand pounds, and the
Divine controlling touch had come, withholding from her what she might
have had.

Was she now to grasp at the thing withheld, to condescend to the use
of such means as Miss Dalton advised for the possible attainment
of that which had been withheld?



CHAPTER XXXI.

SEEN LAST.

"No!" Hermione said aloud, as this question came strongly into her
mind. "No, I could not do that! And to stoop to what Miss Dalton
proposes! To make it a matter of county gossip, under her leadership!
No, indeed! I would rather be penniless all my life."

Pride and principle had both a share in this decision. She struck
a wax match, lighted one of the small green candles affixed to her
davenport, and wrote a brief note without hesitation.

"WESTFORD HALL."

"DEAR MISS DALTON,—Thanks for your kind letter just
received. I am interested, of course, in what you tell
me about my dear grandfather's intentions, but I must
beg of you on no account to let the matter go farther.
I should be distressed if it were generally known.
The letter to Mr. Ogilvie was of course written
in confidence.—Excuse haste, and believe me,
yours truly,"
                  "HERMIONE RIVERS."

Hermione read her note through. "Yes, that will do," she murmured.
"They are the sort of people that one has to be very decided with.
And all this in consequence of one call, and one favour accepted!
Should I find myself frightfully in their power, after weeks in the
house? I wonder if, after all, it might be better not—"

She did not finish the sentence even to herself, but went to place
her note with other letters in the hall ready for the post. Then the
carriage drove up, and she waited to welcome her cousin.

Harvey came in listlessly. His altered looks did not strike Hermione,
since she had been to the cottage two or three times since the
accident. Her greeting was kind but pre-occupied, so much pre-occupied
that she even forgot to ask how Julia was. Mrs. Trevor extended three
gloved fingers, with a careless "How do?" and preceded the others
into the drawing-room, exclaiming, "No lights! Well, that is cheerful,
I must say. Only a single farthing dip! You seem to be doing things
economically!"

This was addressed to Hermione, and Hermione answered—

"I have been busy. I do not know why Slade has not brought lights."
Slade, following with an armful of wraps, cast one reproachful look.
"Yes, I remember, I said I would ring," continued Hermione. "But it
does not matter. We will have lights now."

"It may not matter to you. It matters a good deal to me," Mrs. Trevor
responded in aggrieved tones. "After a dismal drive in the dark
to come to a room looking like a tomb! I declare it gives me the cold
shivers all over. Do make a blaze with the fire, Harvey. And not
a sign of tea! I suppose we are not expected to care for
creature-comforts. You had yours, no doubt, an hour ago."

"No; I have waited," was the frigid reply.

Mrs. Trevor showed no gratitude. She shrugged her shoulders, muttered
"Economical!" and eat down with her feet on the fender. "Where is
Mittie?" came next.

"I do not know."

"Banished to the housekeeper's room, no doubt!"

Hermione really was trying to be patient, in consideration of Harvey's
tired look. Somehow, that which went before had drawn her nearer
to her cousin. She felt as if a conspiracy were afoot to rob him
for her benefit, and the better part of her nature was called up.
Whatever old Mr. Dalrymple ought to have done and had not done,
Hermione did not feel that Harvey was to blame for the state of
things. But Mrs. Trevor's manner was exasperating to the proud girl.

"I do not know," she repeated. Mrs. Trevor turned to Slade, who had
brought in the lamp and was drawing the curtains. "Tell Milton to send
Miss Mittie here," she said.

Slade responded with his usual composure, but in three minutes
he returned alone.

"Mrs. Milton has not seen Miss Mittie all the afternoon, ma'am."

"Then where has she been? Who has seen her?"

"Mrs. Milton was under the impression, ma'am, that Miss Mittie was
with Miss Rivers."

"Under the impression! Why couldn't she make sure?" cried Mrs. Trevor
indignantly. "She might have known better than to suppose anything
of the sort. I have no doubt the poor child has been upstairs in one
of those fireless rooms, catching her death of cold. Do, pray, find
her at once, and send her here. I'm too chilly to stir."

Slade quitted the room with evident intent to obey, and she called
after him, "No, you had better bring up the tea, and send somebody
else to look, for we are half famished."

"If I had known when you would really arrive, I could have had the tea
waiting," said Hermione.

"I told you as much as I knew myself. Slade might have had the
tea-things here ready, at all events. But of course that was too much
trouble for anybody to think of. I should have fancied that the
child's existence might have been remembered by somebody."

Tea came in, and Hermione began to pour it out in silence. Slade put
down the silver cake-basket in its right place, then said—

"Miss Mittie is not upstairs, ma'am."

"Not upstairs? But she must be?" exclaimed Mrs. Trevor, aghast. "Where
else can she have gone?"

"Mrs. Milton and the maids have looked into all the rooms, ma'am,
and Miss Mittie is not to be found."

"She can't be out of doors. It is absurd, at this hour. Of course
she can't. When did anybody see her last?"

"Mrs. Milton saw her for a minute after luncheon, ma'am—some little
time after. Mrs. Milton was very busy, and Miss Mittie said she was
going to speak to Miss Rivers."

"Yes; she came to me," Hermione observed calmly. "She asked when you
were expected to arrive."

"Was that all?"

"Not quite. I was busy, and could not attend to her. She said
something, I think, about going out to get some flowers, I did not
exactly hear what."

"Didn't hear, and didn't care! What o'clock was that?"

"I am not sure. It may have been about half-past three."

"Mittie is most probably at the Rectory," said Harvey.

"No, sir; I thought of that. But Mrs. Milton says that Mr. and Miss
Fitzalan are absent for the day. Miss Mittie told Mrs. Milton so;
and also Mrs. Milton knows that Miss Mittie intended to be at home
when Mrs. Trevor should arrive."

"She may be at the Rectory all the same," said Harvey. "Somebody had
better go and inquire. Yes—you will be the best. If not there, you may
hear of her elsewhere. Unless she has gone to sleep in some corner of
the house. That is as likely as anything. Another cup of tea, please."

Hermione complied with the request, trying to conquer a sense of
uneasiness. Why had she not attended to the little one's wants,
instead of so curtly repelling her? That brief scene did not look
beautiful now, seen as a thing of the past. She felt half disposed
to go and search for Mittie herself, only Mrs. Trevor's manner was so
annoying. Pride protested, and she sat still. Mrs. Trevor muttered
something and vanished, and presently Harvey followed her. Hermione
could hear the sound of feet on the stairs, passing up and down,
of doors opened and shut, of Mittie's name loudly called. It did not
seem kind or gracious that she should remain here alone, taking no
share in the search, and Hermione, suddenly ashamed, stood up,
purposing to help.

But it was too late. Mrs. Trevor came in alone, walked to the rug,
and turned upon Hermione a flushed face of disquiet.

"Mittie is not in the house or at the Rectory," she said in a hard
hoarse voice. "Slade can hear nothing of her. Not a soul in the place
has seen or spoken to the child—since you!"

Hermione's heart sank. "It is extraordinary," she said.

"Extraordinary! Is that all you have to say?"

"No—I am sorry—" Hermione began, forcing herself to be composed.
She was going to say, "I am sorry I did not look after her more."

"A nice sort of sorrow! When you can sit here, amusing yourself,
not even taking the trouble to walk upstairs and look for her. Oh, you
needn't go now. She is not there. Nobody knows where she is, the poor
little darling! Unless you do!"

Hermione kept cold silence.

"I'm not sure that you don't. I believe there's something more in it
than any of us know. She spoke to you last. Why should she have gone
away and hidden herself directly after? What did you say to her, pray?
Speak, girl! What have you done to my child?"

Mrs. Trevor stamped one foot angrily. She seemed to be almost beside
herself with grief and wrathful suspicion. Hermione grew pale.

"I have done nothing to Mittie. You are wrong and cruel to accuse me.
She wanted flowers from the conservatory, and I was too busy to see
to it. She said she would go out. Nothing more passed."

"Nothing more than an ordinary snubbing, I suppose. Poor pet!
she wasn't used to snubbings before she came here. It was left to a
saintly being like yourself to teach her what that sort of thing
means."

"You are hard upon me—for what I cannot possibly help," Hermione said
with difficulty.

"You could have helped it! Common attention to the child was all that
was needed. Hard upon you! As if this were the only time! As if it had
not been going on ever since we came to Westford! Oh, you count
yourself an immaculate being, I know, but I can tell you other people
don't hold the same opinion. You may be an angel among the cottagers,
but you're not at all an angel in your own home. Talk of religion!
I'm sick of the word. You just care to please yourself, and that's
all. Your religion is to do what you like! It's selfishness out and
out! You haven't even the bare kindness to look after a poor forlorn
child left in your charge. Oh, you were too busy, of course—about your
own concerns—and my poor Mittie just had to take her chance. All I can
say is, that if ever I want religion, I'll not come to you for it.
I'll go to somebody who acts instead of talking. I don't believe in
such saintliness as yours. It's all a sham and a delusion,—nothing but
show! There! I've told you plainly, for once, what I think. I don't
care whether you like it or not."

Mrs. Trevor hurried away, and Hermione stood as if stunned, white to
the lips, shuddering all over with long shivers as if of bodily pain.

For the arrow had struck home.



CHAPTER XXXII.

BELEAGUERED.

MITTIE did not mean to be half-an-hour absent when she started on her
little excursion.

Hermione's "snubbing" had an uncomfortable effect, as such snubbings
always had upon Mittie. It was true, as Mrs. Trevor said, that she was
not used to them. Much spoiling and very limited scolding had fallen
to Mittie's share before she came to Westford. An occasional sharp
word from her mother had meant little, and had been always manageable
by a tear from Mittie. The child had really been never allowed to feel
herself in the way, and her loving sensitive nature suffered keenly
from this novel sensation under Hermione's rule.

It was an intense delight to Mittie to think of having her mother
back. Other people might count Mrs. Trevor no wise mother, and no very
estimable person in some respects, but she was Mittie's mother, and
there was genuine and hearty affection between the two.

If only Mittie might have rigged up a big flag of welcome! She
confided the notion to Milton, however, and Milton quashed the scheme
at once. "Miss Rivers wouldn't like it."

Mittie thought it "funny" that cousin Hermione never seemed to like
anything that she wished to do. But she was far too simple and
child-like to bear malice. If anybody had asked her within five
minutes after if she loved cousin Hermione, she would have answered
unhesitatingly, "Oh yes! 'course I do—only not like my Marjory,
you know!"

Failing the flag, she thought of the flowers, and here an appeal
to Hermione, as present head of affairs, was needful. Poor Mittie
was sorely disappointed to fail anew.

One resource remained. Once or twice lately in a walk with Marjory
she had found prettily-tinted autumn leaves, yellow and red and
golden-brown. "Mother" would surely like some of these placed on her
dressing-table.

Hermione did not forbid her to go out, therefore Mittie felt free.
She was accustomed to a good deal of liberty for so small a person.

It did not take long to get ready. Hat and jacket were soon donned,
and Mittie skipped away through the garden, gloves in hand, bent upon
reaching the meadows behind the Rectory. Tinted leaves might be
nearer, but there she knew they could be found without doubt.

There they were too; only, as it happened, all the best and prettiest
were out of Mittie's reach. She stood beneath tempting branches, and
looked up with longing eyes before resolving to go farther.

The next meadow might afford what she wanted. Mittie resolved
to venture so far. If she ran fast, going home, she would almost
certainly be in time.

A stile had to be climbed, and Mittie found herself in a large field,
covered with a succession of long rounded ridges of grass, like
petrified earthwaves. Near the encircling hedge grew in one spot
a good many scattered small trees, and about half-way between this
spot and the centre was a very fine young Wellingtonia, surrounded by
a brick wall. A fence had formerly enclosed the Wellingtonia, but the
fence having been repeatedly broken down, a wall had been substituted
by the owner, who was very proud of his American specimen.

Mittie stole along by the hedge, breaking off here and there a tinted
twig which caught her fancy, till she had quite a bouquet of
variegated colours. Then she resolved to turn home, but she thought
she would take one look in passing at certain small bushes growing
just inside the wall which protected the Wellingtonia. So the little
feet set off thither at a light run.

Suddenly some sound, or perhaps an instinctive sense of danger,
made Mittie turn her head and look back.

To her horror she was being chased. A large bull with lowered horns
was rushing at full gallop straight towards her.

Mittie had not known before that any creature beside herself was in
the field. Had she seen the animal she would have retreated at once,
for years of town-life had made her timid in this respect. Probably he
had been browsing behind a group of trees at a short distance till
attracted by her running.

One faint shriek burst from the child's lips, but she did not pause.
At her utmost speed she fled wildly over the grass towards the
Wellingtonia. Happily, she was a fleet runner, as well as a good
climber. Many a wall and small tree had Mittie learnt to scale since
Westford had been her home. Whether the bull really meant to hurt her,
or was merely trying conclusions as to speed, might be questioned,
but Mittie had no doubt whatever of his murderous intentions.

Not a dozen clear yards lay between pursuer and pursued when Mittie
gained the enclosing wall, but that was enough. She knew of the one
rugged and broken corner where she could ascend, and in another
instant she had gained the summit, safe, but gasping for breath,
blanched with terror, her poor little heart beating so madly that she
could scarcely see what lay before her eyes. She dared not drop down
within the wall, since it might not be possible to get up again on the
other side. There was nothing for it but to sit on the top, which
happily offered a fairly broad and secure surface, and to watch
with fascinated eyes her terrible foe.

One thing became at once apparent, that the bull had no notion
of climbing a wall. Mittie had had her doubts on this head, and was
consoled. Finding his prey out of reach, he stopped running, and
seemed disposed to take the matter coolly; but he showed no intention
of taking himself away. He browsed about carelessly here and there,
always within twenty or thirty yards of the enclosure. It would have
made little difference if he had gone to the utmost verge of the
field. Mittie felt that she could never venture to descend alone,
to cross the wide space between the wall and the stile, while the
enemy was anywhere within reach. She was on a fortress, practically
invested, hopelessly cut off from the rest of the world.

For a while Mittie bore up pluckily. She was accustomed of late
to rove about much alone, and to depend upon herself, and she felt
no doubt that somebody would soon come to the rescue. Only it did seem
very hard not to be at home to welcome her mother, and tears rose with
the thought.

The wall seat, though tolerably safe, since Mittie was not given
to giddiness, could not be called comfortable. Mittie debated several
times whether she might not venture to descend inside. But it would
not do. She would be out of sight there, and getting up again might
prove impossible, so smooth was the inner surface of the wall.

As time passed and no human being approached Mittie began to realise
that things were growing serious. Light faded fast, and soon her
little figure would be invisible, even if somebody did pass near.
It grew very cold too, and Mittie felt quite chilled and stiff with
long exposure. The idea of being all alone here after dark was
terrible to the sensitive child. Fortitude failed at last, and she
broke into bitter sobs, crying out for help.

In an interval of crying her eyes were caught by a faint light beyond
the first meadow. Mittie knew it to be the Rectory light, and the very
sight brought a thrill of hope. "O Marjory! Marjory! do come!" wailed
Mittie at first; and then— "But Marjory would tell me to ask God,"
she thought. And with the wailing sobs, which she was too cold and
frightened to check, were childish murmurs of prayer and trust.
Was ever such pleading unanswered?



CHAPTER XXXIII.

NOT MARJORY!

"MISS RIVERS, if you please—there's a woman just come—"

Hermione turned upon Slade a face of such marble whiteness that he
stopped, dumbfounded. She looked like one who has received some sharp
blow. But she said only—

"Yes, go on. A woman has come—"

"The one who sometimes does a bit of weeding, Miss. She says her
little boy saw Miss Mittie go into the meadows behind the Rectory
this afternoon."

"She would not be there now, of course. Has any one been to look?"

"I don't know, Miss. I thought I should find Mrs. Trevor here. It did
just come to my mind as Miss Mittie might have got hurt or been
frightened. The banks are slippery down by the stream. And besides—"

"Yes?" Hermione said inquiringly.

"Mr. Haye has taken to putting that big bull of his in them meadows
the last three days, Miss Rivers. And Miss Mittie's mortal afraid
of cows. I don't know as he'd hurt anybody; they say he isn't so
fierce as he looks. But he does run; and if Miss Mittie saw him
coming, she might get a fright and tumble down somewhere."

This was a long speech for Slade to make. Hermione listened, with her
pale face turned towards him.

"Yes—it might be something of that sort. I don't see how she—But we
can find out. Don't say anything to anybody, Slade. You and I
will go."

"Yes, Miss." Slade's manner showed none of his surprise.

"I must do something. I can't rest," said Hermione in a low voice.
"Dinner is put off, is it not? There will be time. Besides—nothing
matters. She must be found. Wait one moment, and I will come."

Slade obeyed, with only a look of sympathy. In two minutes Hermione
appeared, wearing hat and ulster. Milton alone was told of their
expedition. Hermione set off at such a pace that Slade could hardly
keep up with her.

It was by this time quite dark, and many others were out searching.
Even Harvey ventured a short distance, though very unfit for the
exertion. Mrs. Trevor stayed indoors, with despairing tears and
complaints.

Nobody seemed to have thought of the meadows behind the Rectory.
Probably Marjory Fitzalan would have done so, but she and her father
were absent still. Few knew so much as Marjory of Mittie's favourite
resorts.

Slade had procured a lighted lantern during his two minutes of
waiting, one used already in the search. But for its help they could
hardly have followed the meadow-path.

An examination of the muddy bank of the stream proved fruitless,
and they went on till the stile was reached leading into the next
large field. "You'll catch cold, Miss," Slade said solicitously,
noting a shiver. "I don't know as it's much use going farther.
Miss Mittie isn't likely to be there."

"Hush! O hush!"

Hermione stood like a statue, listening.

"I can't hear nothing," Slade declared. He was too much excited
for his usual careful choice of words.

"O hush!"

Slade obeyed, and there was another pause.

"Yes, it is her voice! A child crying! Oh, make haste!"

"Are you sure, Miss?" Slade's voice was more than dubious.

"Quite sure. Quick, Slade! she is somewhere near!"

Hermione sprang over the stile, and took the lead. She pressed forward
eagerly, pausing from time to time to study the direction of the
sounds, which grew more distinct as they advanced. Slade was soon
obliged to admit that "there was something!"

"Not as I don't know that it isn't some sort of a creature caught in a
trap," he added. "They do cry, some of 'em, wonderful like a child."

"But that is Miss Mittie's voice! Slade, can't you hear? She is
sobbing and calling for help."

Slade's doubts were silenced. There could soon be no hesitation as to
the nature of those wailing cries, and the very words became
distinguishable. "Mother, mother! O Marjory, do come!" But no mention
of "cousin Hermione!" A few hours earlier Hermione might not have
noticed the omission. She did now, with a sharp pang.

"Hallo! That's the brute!" exclaimed Slade, with exultation over his
own foresight, as a great creature retired promptly before the blaze
of his lamp. He had not breath for much more. Hermione led at a run.

"The bull! Is it, really? Then you were right. Slade, come quickly.
He will not touch us—and just hear that poor child! Mittie! Mittie!
we are coming!" she cried cheerily, and her voice rang far ahead.

"Marjory! Marjory!" was the answering appeal. Poor little Mittie could
hardly picture such an event as cousin Hermione coming to the rescue.

Half a minute more, and the wall was reached. Slade swung up his
lantern. "She's on the—top—" he panted. "I'll get her—down."

"O Marjory! that dreadful dreadful bull!" wailed Mittie. "Slade, hold
me tight; don't let him come! I'm so frightened, and so cold!
O Marjory—"

But Hermione's arms, not Marjory's, received the little shivering
figure lifted to the ground by Slade, folding her round in a
protecting embrace, and Hermione's voice, not Marjory's, said
pityingly, "Poor darling! No, he shall not hurt you—he shall not touch
you, Mittie dear! you are quite safe now. Don't be frightened! Don't
sob so! Slade, she is so terribly cold; I don't think she can stand!
What can we do? Oh, there is this!" and she drew off a small shawl
which she had thrown about her own shoulders, putting it round Mittie.
"Poor little thing! but don't cry, darling. Try to walk, because it
will warm you."

"Is it cousin Hermione?" came with an amazed gasp, and then Mittie
put up her face. "I'll try—try not to cry. I don't want—want to be
naughty. But oh, don't let the bull come!"

"He shall kill me first, Mittie. But you needn't be afraid. Slade is
here, and the bull is frightened of the light."

"God sent you, didn't He?" came in an unexpected whisper, amid the
sobs and shivers which the child had no power to control. "I thought—
thought He would! Sweet cousin Hermione—you are so—so kind!"

"You'd best let me carry her, Miss," Slade said gravely.

No; Hermione could not resolve to unloose those little clinging arms.
Her heart ached with bitter self-reproach at this loving response
after all her past coldness. She was very strong, and Mittie was so
small and slight. Hermione lifted her off the wet grass, and held her
firmly, accepting such help as Slade could give, but refusing to part
with the child. Mittie's cold face lay on her shoulder, and more than
one tear fell upon it.

"Cousin Hermione, are you crying?" asked Mittie wonderingly. "Oh, I
know you're tired. Mayn't I walk? Why, cousin Hermione, I didn't ever
think you cared one scrap for me. Sweet cousin Hermione, I do love you
so."

Hermione almost felt as if her heart would break under the childish
tender words, coming so soon after the sharp stab of terrible truth
given by the mother.



CHAPTER XXXIV.

GIVING IN.

A WEEK later Julia came home. The day before, she had a letter from
Francesca, which she re-read carefully in the carriage on her way
back. Part of it ran as follows:—

"You will find things different in certain respects, not altogether
disagreeable respects. I told you about Hermione finding poor Mittie
on the wall, and actually carrying her part of the way home, with
Slade there by her side. Why she couldn't let Slade do it passes my
comprehension, but I suppose Hermione always must do things after her
own fashion, unlike other people. Anyhow, she is oddly changed since
that day. I must confess that I did for once speak out, when I found
how she had been neglecting that poor child, and I gave her a good
piece of my mind. She didn't say a word in answer, only turned so pale
that really I almost thought she meant to treat me to a fainting fit
by way of mild revenge. So perhaps the shot told. If so, I'm sure it
is not to be regretted."

"Anyhow, whatever is the cause, I am glad to have her moderately civil
to myself. More than civility I don't ask. As for the devotion which
has sprung up between her and Mittie, I suppose I might be jealous
if I were disposed to jealousy, which happily I am not. It is too much
trouble. Mittie is better, but we can't let her come downstairs yet.
She has had a narrow escape of rheumatic fever. Hermione sits with her
by the hour together, reading and telling stories, which saves me
trouble, so I don't object. Mittie's raptures are about equally
divided now between 'My Marjory' and 'Sweet cousin Hermione.' So long
as the child is amused, I really don't care what amuses her."

"I am giving you this little hint beforehand as to the present posture
of affairs, for fear you should blunder. Hermione evidently objects
to remarks on her proceedings."

"Harvey is getting impatient to be off to East Bourne, I can see.
I haven't an idea what Hermione will do. Miss Dalton paid her an
immensely long call two days ago. Yesterday I told her that we should
most likely be off before the end of next week, and she merely said
'Yes,' in her most composed tone. Harvey is by no means lively
just now, but I dare say you will put him right. He gets nervous about
himself, I suspect—wants a thorough change. I doubt if he will drive
over for you to-morrow, as you say that it is not necessary.
The distance both ways is really rather much for him just now, and I
am sure I cannot possibly spare the time. Hermione might, but she will
not think of it."



Whether Hermione did or did not think of it, she made no offer to go,
and Julia's only companion was Milton. Perhaps Julia had a sense
of forlornness through the silent drive. Her bodily needs were well
attended to, but Milton's ideas of propriety prevented any possibility
of conversation, and Julia had ample time for thought and
letter-reading. However if any such sense existed, it was driven away
by the warm welcome accorded on her arrival.

Prepared by Francesca's letter, Julia showed no surprise when told
that Hermione had spent the afternoon with Mittie. She said only,
"How kind!" and a softened look in Hermione's eyes showed that she had
said the right thing.

Harvey looked, as Francesca had said, by no means lively. Julia could
not make him out. He seemed to be under a weight, listless, wanting
in energy, often irritable without cause. Was it the effect of the
accident only, Julia often asked herself, or was that old question
of Hermione's possible claims pressing upon his mind? But she could
not bring the latter forward hastily again. She had spoken once
clearly and strongly, and Harvey had told her to wait, had desired
her to trust him. She did wait, and she tried to trust.

If Harvey did not seem happy, neither did Hermione. Julia noted this
increasingly day by day. But every effort on her part to draw nearer
to Hermione, during the remainder of that week, was evaded or
repelled.

After some hesitation, Thursday in the following week was fixed upon
for the journey to East Bourne. Julia begged her sister to say nothing
about it either to or before Hermione. She had a keen recollection
of Hermione's passionate outburst, and no less keen a recollection
of her husband's desire that she should "manage" Hermione's going
with them all to Eastbourne. Julia felt that her only hope of success
lay in preventing any further collisions between Francesca and
Hermione. Fortunately, Mrs. Trevor was so far gratified with
Hermione's attentions to Mittie as to fall in with Julia's wishes.

For more than a day and a half Julia put off speaking—not on
principle, but simply because she lacked courage, and could not find
a good opening. Sunday came, and she had said nothing. "Well, if you
don't, I will!" declared Francesca. "I'm burning to talk; and I can't
promise to keep mum any longer, with my head full of East Bourne."

This brought Julia to the point. She gave up the hope of a "good
opening," and resolved to make the opportunity which had declined
to make itself. Directly after early dinner Hermione disappeared
as usual for Sunday-school work, but later in the afternoon, when she
came home, Julia happened to be alone in the drawing-room.

"Julia—oh, I thought I should find Mittie here," Hermione said, with a
touch of embarrassment, and an evident intention to retreat. She
seemed to dread anything in the shape of a tête-à-tête just now
with anybody. Julia rose to meet her.

"Francesca called Mittie away. I think they are in the morning-room
till tea-time. Won't you stay, Hermione? I want so much to speak
to you."

Hermione stood still, two or three yards within the door,
not approaching any nearer. "Yes. What do you want?" she asked.

"Won't you come and sit down here just for a minute or two?"

Hermione seemed unwilling to comply, but Julia's pleading manner
prevailed, and she came slowly to the sofa.

"I must not stay," she said in an uneasy manner, not like her old
self-confidence. "I have to take off my hat and jacket before tea—
and it is getting rather late."

"Half-an-hour before tea—isn't it? I want much to say something."

Julia's cheeks were flushed, and her hand was unsteady. "Ought you not
to be lying down?" asked Hermione.

"No; it doesn't matter. I have been resting, and I am so much better
now. Isn't it wonderful to think how different things might have been
in that dreadful accident?—and now both of us are getting on so well."

"Yes," was Hermione's response.

"I can never forget it. A time like that must make a difference to one
all through life. At least I hope so. I don't feel as if I could ever
take things lightly and carelessly again. Won't you help me, dear
Hermione? I know you can—as so few could."

Julia spoke with a grave truth and naturalness which showed that she
thoroughly meant what she said. But Hermione shrank under the words,
and drew her hand away from Julia's touch. "O no!" escaped her lips.

"Won't you?—when there is so much that I want to learn, and you can
give me just the help that I need?"

"No, no!" The words seemed wrung from Hermione, and she turned her
head away. "I can't. Not I. Mr. Fitzalan—"

"Yes, indeed, he does help me more than I can tell. I am always
learning from his sermons. But still—you and I live together, and it
does seem as if we ought to be friends. Your training has been so
different from mine. Couldn't you teach me the things you have learnt
all your life?—the things I have only just begun to know?"

"Oh no! I don't deserve—"

The words were scarcely audible. Julia could not be quite sure what
Hermione said, only there was no mistake about the accompanying sob.

"Then shall we help one another?" she asked affectionately.

Hermione made no answer to this, and her face was still turned away,
but she did not repel the arm which came softly round her waist.

"That was not all I had to say. There was something else," Julia began
after a little break. She was afraid of interruptions. "I have been
wanting to tell you all yesterday and to-day. About going to East
Bourne—"

"Yes. Mittie says it is to be next Thursday."

Julia augured ill from the cold tone, but she went on, "Yes, I think
so. There seems no reason for putting-off longer, and we all need
a change. Will you come with us, Hermione?"

The response was delayed. Julia began to tremble.

"Please do. I want it so much, and my husband too. If you knew
how anxious he is that you should—"

"I have decided not to go to the Daltons."

"And you will come with us?"

"Yes. Mittie begged it, and I have promised."

"Dear little Mittie!" Julia murmured. "Thank you so much! It is very
good to do what we wish. We will try to make you happy there."

"I must take off my hat now."

And Hermione was gone. She could not resolve to unbend farther
just then, though not insensible to the kindness of those loving and
humble words which made yielding so much easier for her. The contrast
between Julia and herself smote her painfully; and at the same time
her pride writhed beneath the pain of having to give way, when she had
so repeatedly declared that she would not.

Another grief lay below, the grief of a sorrowful new self-knowledge
following upon long self-deception. Hermione had only endured it
hitherto, refusing to face the truth bravely. But Julia's words took
effect. Hermione did face it that evening in Church, solemnly,
silently, with many tears.



Mr. Fitzalan went home after the evening service, counting his day's
work done, and was met by Marjory, who had arrived first. She said,
"Father, Hermione is in the study. She wants a word with you. Slade
was to see her home, and he is waiting in the kitchen."

Mr. Fitzalan made a sign of assent, and went to his study, closing the
door behind him. Hermione stood near the table, her head bent, and
traces of tears on her cheeks.

"Well, my child?" he said kindly, speaking as a father might have
spoken.

Hermione put her hand into his. "I am going to East Bourne," she said
brokenly.

"That is good news. I am sure you are wise."

"Mittie—wants it—"

"Yes. She is a dear little child."

"I told her—but it is not only Mittie. I know I—ought."

"I think you are right. By-and-by you must come here for a long visit.
After your return."

Hermione's head drooped lower, and she clasped her hands, resting them
on the table. She looked wonderfully fair, standing thus, he thought—
fairer than in her more confident and smiling moods.

"Mr. Fitzalan, is it—"

"Is it—what?"

"Is it—has it been—"

He waited.

"Has it been—all—deceiving?"

"What makes you ask?"

"Mrs. Trevor said—" Sobs shook her frame, and she could not go on.

"One cannot judge another. Nay, more—we cannot judge our own selves
fairly. You must take that question to your Master."

"Is He that—to me?" she asked, as if brokenhearted with the doubt.

"Yes, He is that to you by absolute right, and you are bound to His
service by Baptismal promise and vow. He is your Lord and Master.
And if you have been untrue to Him—devoted to your own interests
rather than to His—is not that it, Hermione—?"

"Oh—yes!" she moaned rather than said.

"Then, dear child, what is there for you—what is there for any of us—
but to go back to His Feet and tell Him all? Never mind how often you
have or have not been to Him truly before. He is waiting to receive
you to-night—whether for the first or the hundredth time. He will
give you the help you need. He is yours, and you are His bounden
servant. But let the service in the future be true and thorough—
not half-hearted. Not 'Some of self, and some of Thee!' but 'None of
self, and all of Thee!'"

"Thank you! Oh, I will!" Hermione whispered with a burst of gentle
weeping such as had scarcely been seen in her before.



CHAPTER XXXV.

"DOING JUSTLY."

"THREE Parades, mother! One at the top of another!"

"One above another, I suppose you mean."

"Yes. And lots of green growing all along. Hermione says it's called
tam—something. And there's a Splash-Point, only it's ever so far-off
right along the Parade, beyond the pier, and the waves do splash up
there. Cousin Hermione and I could only just race round between the
waves. And cousin Hermione got such a lovely colour in her cheeks.
I saw lots of people looking at her. And cousin Hermione says I
needn't call her 'cousin,' cause it's so long—all that lot of it!
Hermione is four whole syllables, you know. Oh, I do like going out
with her—it's such fun. And I'm sure cousin Hermione—no, I mean
Hermione—likes it too."

"She is very kind to take so much trouble with you," Julia remarked.

"But she says it isn't trouble one bit. She says it's fun. I didn't
know Hermione liked fun before, and she does. We went up to the Wish
Tower, mother, and there's a moat, and a bridge, and a gun, and a man.
Oh, and down below there are holes in the great high wall, and I saw
birds going in and out. Wasn't that odd? Cousin Hermione couldn't tell
me why they went in. I thought grown-up people knew everything.
But they don't. And, mother, we saw Beachy Head, ever so far-off,
you know, and high up. Three miles away, cousin Hermione says. And I
do want to go there some day, 'cause you know it's in the poetry about
the Spanish Armada that my Marjory read to me. I've learnt bits, and I
know that part. Oh, and mother—"

"Have pity, do, child! The way you chatter!"

Mittie came to an abashed pause, looking joyous still.

"I'll tell you the rest by-and-by," she said sedately. "Only I do
think East Bourne is the very most delightful place I ever saw in all
my life! And now I'm going back to Hermione."

"It's a perfect craze," Mrs. Trevor remarked carelessly. She did not
look annoyed, however. Hermione's love for the child gratified her
in the abstract, though the perpetual recurrence of those "four
syllables" did at times prove wearisome.

This was their first day in East Bourne, so a little excitement
on Mittie's part was excusable. Despite its being the month
of November, they had soft mild and clear weather, without rain
or fogs, and with many gleams of sunshine. The three ladies enjoyed
their change thoroughly, Hermione not less than the others. Harvey
still wore a grave and abstracted air, and the dents in his forehead,
of which Mittie had once complained, were now so habitual that the
child had ceased to notice them.

Nearly a week after their arrival, Julia had one afternoon to take
a note to her husband in the small sitting-room which he here used
as a study. He received it with a slight detaining gesture, and she
stood waiting while he read.

"No answer needed," he said, glancing up. "Sit down, Julia. I don't
often get you alone for five minutes."

"We seem generally all together," she replied, with a throb
of pleasure at the words. "Harvey, I wish you looked strong again.
I think I shall be well first."

"I! Oh, I am all right—should be, at least, if it were not
for worries."

Julia did not ask, "What worries?—" at least not in words. Her face
was eloquent.

"Why do you never speak to me now about Hermione's—" he hesitated,
and at length the word "claims?" followed.

"You told me that she had none."

"And you were satisfied?"

Julia lifted her black eyes to his, answering truthfully, "No!"

"Then why not speak?"

"I thought you might not like it. You told me I mast depend upon you
to—" and a pause.

"To 'do justly,'" her husband said.

"Yes."

"And," there was emphasis in Harvey's voice, "and 'to walk humbly with
thy God!' Is not that it? But first comes the 'doing justly.' Does
that mean that a course of doing unjustly would make the other
impossible?"

She bent her head and answered, "I am afraid so."

"And I—have found it so."

Julia's hand came on his arm. "Will you not," she pleaded, "will you
not do it—do what seems right——be on the safe side?"

"I cannot make up my mind. Not for want of thinking. It has been
before me constantly. But there are difficulties. Something must be
done, undoubtedly. The question is—what?"

"Twenty thousand pounds?"

"It would mean pecuniary pressure for years for you and me."

"Ought we to think of that—if it is right—if your uncle meant her
to have so much?"

"If? That is the question. Did he mean it calmly, or was it a sudden
impulse? Should I be right to part with such an amount? There are
certain duties which I owe to the estate, to those living on the
estate. How if I could not fulfil those duties?"

"But have we not to 'do justly,' not thinking of consequences?"

Harvey smiled. "Yours is a very straightforward view of the matter."

"Is it the wrong view?"

"Not abstractly—it could not be. Practically there are complications
which make decision not so easy. You must remember that I am not bound
to give any particular sum. We may have a sense of what is morally
right or wrong in the matter, but legally I am free. My uncle's mere
wishes have no binding power over me."

"No. But still—" she said.

"But still I agree with you that something should be done. I shall not
be at rest till it is settled one way or another."

"Cannot you now—Why put off?"

"I am not able to come to a decision."

"Then why not speak to Hermione? Tell her plainly how things stand,
and see what she will say. Would not that be a help? She is so kind
and loving lately—so different—I do think she would better help you
in seeing what to do. Anything is better than to put off. Suppose you
changed your mind again!"

"You have small trust in me!"

"It isn't that! I only know what I am myself. May I call Hermione?"

"At once?" Man-like, he distrusted impulse in a business matter.

"Yes, at once. She is indoors. Isn't it best to be open?"

And after a little more hesitation, a little more pleading, Harvey
actually said, "Yes!"



Hermione listened to her cousin's statement with an air of calm
attention, sitting opposite to him, her hands folded on her lap, and
her blue eyes glancing from him to Julia. His statement was that of a
man of business, though gleams of personal feeling came in now and
then. When he had mentioned the letter to Mr. Selwyn, and the "twenty
thousand pounds," she said in surprise, "No! that must be a mistake!"
When he spoke of his difficulty in parting with so much in a lump,
she said, "No! oh no! it would not do at all."

"Now you see exactly how things stand," were Harvey's concluding
words. "I wish to do what is right and fair, but the estate will not
stand unlimited pulls upon it. Julia advises me to consult with you.
I do not fancy that my uncle wished to injure the property."

"I know he did not. I can help you here," she said, with her sweetest
smile. "If only I had known before that you were worrying yourselves!"

"Then your grandfather spoke to you of his intentions?"

"No; he never talked business to me. It was not his way. But on the
Saturday before he was taken from us, he wrote to an old friend,
Mr. Ogilvie—a relative of your Mrs. Ogilvie—Julia. You must see
the letter. I only heard of it lately—through the Daltons at first—
and some days ago Mr. Ogilvie sent it to me. I have not liked
to mention it to either of you. Of course the Daltons had no right
to interfere, and—But I will get the letter."

She sped lightly away, and Harvey looked towards his wife with a
quiet, "You were right!"

Almost immediately Hermione came back, flushed and eager. She gave the
sheet to Harvey, saying, "It is there, on the second page. Read to
Julia, if you like."

And Harvey read:—"'You will remember my grandchild, Hermione Rivers—
a child when you saw her last, but now a young woman. She is dearer
to me than ever. I can feel no fears about her future; she will never
fail to win friends. But, as you are aware, the Westford estate
is entailed, and I have to-day resolved to leave to her, absolutely,
the sum of £10,000. I wish I could make it £20,000, but I doubt if the
estate would stand so great a loss, and do not feel that I have
a right to cripple my successor. You will think it strange that I have
not provided fully for my Hermione sooner. Blame an old man's
procrastination. It shall be delayed no longer.'"

"Strange!" Harvey uttered.

"You see! The most he thought of was ten thousand," said Hermione.
"And I shall never want so much."

"When did you say it was written?" Julia inquired. "On the Saturday?
The very same day that he wrote of twenty thousand pounds
to Mr. Selwyn!"

"Probably at the same time. That must have been a slip of the pen,"
Harvey said gravely. "His mind was no doubt confused."

"Poor grandfather! Yes; the illness was coming on even then. But there
is no mistake about what he really meant. He gives his reasons for the
one, not for the other."

"True!" Harvey murmured. There was a brief silence of two or three
minutes, during which he bent his head in deep thought. Julia watched
him fearfully. Hermione seemed almost indifferent, certainly not
anxious.

Then Harvey raised his eyes, a new light in them. "The ten thousand
pounds shall be yours, Hermione. I will take steps at once."

Hermione looked disturbed.

"Is that right? Is it needful?"

"I think so; both right and needful. You have made matters plain.
If he had lived another week, it would have been yours. It shall be
yours now!"

Hermione could only murmur something inarticulate about, "Very very
kind!"

"Only just!" Harvey answered.

Julia bent to kiss the forehead from which all puckers had
disappeared, whispering, "I am so glad! oh, so thankful!"



And Harry Fitzalan!

The ten thousand pounds were no bait at all to Harry! He scouted any
such considerations. He loved Hermione deeply, but he could not get
over that one sight of Hermione in a rage. It "finished him off,"
he said. No such wife for him!

And though he could not cease to care for her, he held studiously
aloof, kept resolutely apart. Perhaps Harry's character was none the
worse in the end for this long process of abstention—long, for it
lasted four years. Nobody knew what Hermione thought of it. She did
suffer, for she did love; but no human being was allowed a glimpse
below the surface.

At length, after four whole years, even the sceptical Harry was
convinced of that which every one else saw plainly, the real change
in Hermione. He found that she was now what once she had only,
at least in a measure, seemed to be.

Then he proposed, and was accepted.



THE END.



Printed by BALLANTYNE, HANSON & Co.
Edinburgh & London







*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DALRYMPLES ***

Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
be renamed.

Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
United States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
license, especially commercial redistribution.

START: FULL LICENSE

THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.

Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works

1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
1.E.8.

1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.

1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
you share it without charge with others.

1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country other than the United States.

1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:

  This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
  most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
  restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
  under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
  United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
  you are located before using this eBook.

1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.

1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.

1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg™ License.

1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
provided that:

• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
  you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
  to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
  agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
  Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
  within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
  legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
  payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
  Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
  Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
  Literary Archive Foundation.”

• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
  License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
  copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
  all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
  works.

• You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
  any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
  receipt of the work.

• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.

1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
forth in Section 3 below.

1.F.

1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.

1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.

1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.

1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.

1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.

Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™

Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.

Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™'s
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
www.gutenberg.org.

Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.

The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact.

Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation

Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without
widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.

The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate.

While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.

International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.

Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works

Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.

Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.

Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org.

This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.